Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n common_a conclude_v great_a 214 4 2.1337 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A01325 A retentiue, to stay good Christians, in true faith and religion, against the motiues of Richard Bristow Also a discouerie of the daungerous rocke of the popish Church, commended by Nicholas Sander D. of Diuinitie. Done by VVilliam Fulke Doctor of diuinitie, and Maister of Pembroke hall in Cambridge. Fulke, William, 1538-1589. 1580 (1580) STC 11449; ESTC S102732 222,726 326

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

apostle_n have_v i_o answer_v the_o king_n supremacy_n be_v perfect_o distinct_a from_o any_o power_n the_o apostle_n have_v for_o although_o he_o have_v authority_n over_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a according_a to_o god_n word_n yet_o be_v he_o no_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n but_o a_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v chief_a authority_n in_o all_o cause_n not_o absolute_a to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v but_o only_o what_o god_n command_v he_o namely_o to_o provide_v by_o law_n that_o god_n may_v be_v true_o worship_v and_o all_o offence_n against_o his_o religion_n may_v be_v punish_v and_o whereas_o m._n saunder_n infer_v that_o a_o ethnic_a prince_n or_o turk_n may_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o our_o church_n we_o utter_o deny_v to_o any_o such_o the_o name_n of_o a_o head_n which_o can_v not_o be_v a_o member_n but_o even_o a_o ethnic_n prince_n or_o a_o turk_n may_v be_v chief_a magistrate_n over_o the_o faithful_a and_o make_v law_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o a_o hypocrite_n christian_n may_v they_o be_v also_o to_o be_v obey_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o god_n nabuchadnezer_n darius_n cyrus_n artaxerxes_n which_o be_v heathen_a prince_n make_v godly_a law_n for_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n &_o furtherance_n of_o his_o people_n as_o in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n the_o book_n of_o ezra_n and_o nehemiah_n it_o be_v manifest_a s_o paul_n appeal_v to_o nero_n the_o emperor_n eusebius_n testify_v lib._n 7._o cap._n 24_o that_o the_o christian_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o a_o bishopp_n election_n and_o for_o a_o bishop_n house_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o aurelianus_n a_o heathen_a emperor_n and_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o church_n be_v always_o under_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o her_o several_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n when_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n ordain_v for_o her_o edification_n and_o unity_n and_o not_o one_o pope_n over_o all_o eph._n 4._o 13._o but_o now_o he_o will_v enter_v one_o degree_n far_o and_o suppose_v that_o a_o king_n may_v be_v as_o good_a as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o any_o mortal_a man_n to_o be_v or_o as_o any_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v yet_o he_o can_v neither_o baptize_v consecrate_v forgive_v sin_n praise_n excommunicate_a bless_v nor_o be_v judge_n of_o doctrine_n by_o his_o kingly_a authority_n if_o he_o can_v do_v none_o of_o those_o he_o can_v not_o be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n i_o deny_v this_o argument_n for_o his_o supremacy_n be_v not_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n or_o any_o of_o they_o but_o to_o provide_v and_o command_v that_o they_o may_v be_v do_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v but_o he_o rise_v up_o again_o and_o say_v that_o whosoever_o have_v sovereign_a authority_n either_o in_o civil_a matter_n or_o ecclesiastical_a he_o may_v in_o his_o own_o person_n execute_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o any_o of_o his_o inferior_n may_v do_v so_o he_o say_v the_o king_n if_o he_o will_v may_v be_v judge_n in_o westminster_n hall_n sheriff_n and_o constable_n yea_o he_o may_v play_v the_o tailor_n master_n carpenter_n or_o tanner_n it_o be_v marvel_n he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o may_v be_v both_o a_o king_n and_o subject_n likewise_o the_o primate_n he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o pope_n may_v help_v a_o priest_n to_o mass_n carry_v the_o cross_n in_o procession_n dig_v a_o grave_n etc._n etc._n i_o deny_v this_o rule_n to_o hold_v in_o all_o thing_n for_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o the_o prince_n may_v not_o do_v for_o lack_v of_o knowledge_n and_o some_o thing_n for_o lack_n of_o call_v and_o yet_o he_o may_v command_v both_o to_o be_v do_v for_o controversy_n of_o law_n he_o may_v not_o decide_v except_o he_o have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n nor_o minister_v physic_n except_o he_o have_v knowledge_n in_o physic_n yet_o he_o may_v command_v both_o lawyer_n &_o physician_n to_o do_v according_a to_o their_o knowledge_n likewise_o to_o preach_v baptize_v etc._n etc._n he_o may_v not_o because_o he_o lack_v call_v for_o none_o may_v do_v those_o thing_n lawful_o but_o he_o that_o have_v a_o special_a call_n but_o he_o may_v command_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v &_o to_o be_v well_o do_v according_a to_o god_n law_n whereof_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v ignorant_a and_o for_o that_o purpose_n be_v especial_o command_v to_o study_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n law_n that_o not_o only_o in_o matter_n concern_v his_o own_o person_n but_o in_o matter_n concern_v god_n honour_n he_o may_v cause_v all_o man_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n deut._n 17._o 18._o so_o do_v david_n solomon_n jehosaphat_n ezechias_n josias_n command_v the_o priest_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o their_o king_n to_o execute_v and_o be_v it_o so_o strange_a a_o matter_n that_o a_o popish_a king_n may_v not_o command_v his_o chaplayne_n to_o say_v mass_n or_o to_o say_v his_o mass_n reverent_o and_o orderly_o as_o the_o law_n of_o popery_n do_v require_v if_o he_o may_v command_v over_o though_o e_z matter_n which_o yet_o he_o may_v not_o do_v himself_o let_v m._n saunder_n see_v how_o his_o rule_n hold_v that_o whosoever_o have_v authority_n in_o any_o matter_n may_v do_v all_o thing_n himself_o which_o any_o of_o his_o inferior_n may_v do_v or_o which_o he_o may_v command_v to_o be_v do_v whereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o right_a or_o supreme_a power_n at_o all_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n unless_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o from_o the_o bishop_n so_o that_o a_o king_n if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n commissary_n may_v do_v that_o by_o m._n sanders_n exception_n w_o c_o nether_a by_o commandment_n of_o god_n nor_o his_o kingly_a power_n he_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v another_o argument_n he_o bring_v as_o good_a as_o this_o that_o the_o lesser_a authority_n do_v not_o comprehend_v the_o great_a and_o therefore_o m_n horn_n must_v answer_v he_o whether_o to_o preach_v baptize_v forgive_v sin_n etc._n etc._n be_v great_a or_o lesser_a ministry_n than_o the_o king_n authority_n if_o it_o be_v great_a then_o it_o can_v not_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o king_n authority_n which_o be_v lesser_a what_o that_o reverend_a father_n the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n have_v answer_v it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o book_n against_o m._n feckenham_n but_o to_o talk_v with_o you_o m._n saunder_n what_o if_o i_o grant_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o king_n authority_n will_v you_o thereupon_o infer_v that_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v not_o to_o command_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o matter_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o deed_n you_o conclude_v so_o but_o your_o argument_n be_v naught_o for_o the_o king_n be_v god_n lieutenant_n to_o see_v both_o the_o church_n and_o the_o common_a wealth_n to_o be_v well_o order_v and_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v great_a and_o lesser_a than_o another_o in_o diverse_a respect_n as_o in_o authority_n of_o command_v the_o king_n be_v great_a than_o the_o physician_n in_o knowledge_n &_o practice_n of_o physic_n the_o king_n be_v less_o than_o the_o physician_n so_o in_o authority_n of_o command_v the_o prince_n be_v great_a than_o the_o minister_n but_o in_o authority_n of_o ministration_n he_o be_v less_o and_o no_o inconvenience_n in_o the_o world_n to_o the_o dignity_n of_o other_o estate_n or_o call_n the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n example_n m._n saunder_n say_v be_v evil_a apply_v for_o they_o only_o show_v what_o be_v do_v and_o not_o what_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v do_v and_o so_o for_o many_o circumstance_n be_v subject_a to_o much_o wrangle_n 1._o for_o either_o he_o be_v no_o good_a prince_n which_o meddle_v with_o dispose_v of_o holy_a matter_n 2._o or_o in_o that_o deed_n he_o be_v not_o good_a 3._o or_o he_o do_v it_o by_o commission_n from_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o high_a priest_n 4._o or_o he_o be_v deceive_v by_o flatterer_n 5._o or_o he_o be_v enforce_v by_o necessity_n but_o all_o these_o quarrel_n notwithstanding_o the_o example_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o plain_a that_o m._n sanders_n ●●angling_v can_v not_o obscure_v they_o david_n a_o good_a prince_n do_v well_o in_o appoint_v the_o levit_n and_o priest_n to_o their_o several_a office_n and_o forbid_v the_o levit_n to_o carry_v the_o ark_n and_o the_o vessel_n thereof_o without_o any_o commission_n from_o priest_n or_o prophet_n but_o only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o deceive_v by_o flatterer_n nor_o enforce_v by_o necessity_n 1._o chron._n 23
the_o like_a i_o say_v of_o the_o story_n of_o the_o body_n of_o babycas_n the_o martyr_n in_o presence_n whereof_o the_o oracle_n of_o apollo_n can_v not_o speak_v but_o chrysostom_n to_o draw_v m●n_z from_o all_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n send_v they_o from_o relic_n in_o gen._n hom._n 15_o nay_o he_o send_v they_o to_o the_o church_n and_o house_n of_o prayer_n &_o to_o the_o grave_n of_o the_o martyr_n not_o to_o worship_v they_o as_o papist_n do_v but_o by_o such_o thing_n to_o receive_v blessing_n and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o be_v entangle_v with_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n while_o they_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o martyr_n to_o follow_v their_o godly_a conversation_n and_o albeit_o there_o be_v some_o superstition_n in_o that_o regard_n of_o martyr_n trouble_n &_o memory_n as_o in_o that_o age_n there_o be_v yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v there_o be_v all_o popery_n nor_o such_o gross_a idolatry_n as_o papist_n do_v commit_v with_o their_o counterfeit_a rehque_n final_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o god_n at_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n may_v well_o be_v use_v by_o augustin_n chrysostom_n &_o theodoret_n against_o the_o gentill_n asan_n argument_n to_o overthrow_v their_o idolatry_n even_o as_o the_o example_n of_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o god_n at_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o elizeus_fw-la against_o the_o idolatrous_a israelit_n reg._n but_o it_o follow_v not_o thereof_o that_o idol_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o their_o law_n by_o worship_v they_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v for_o y_o e_o bone_n of_o elizeus_fw-la be_v not_o for_o that_o miracle_n take_v out_o of_o his_o grave_n &_o shine_v in_o gold_n divide_v into_o many_o church_n worship_v lick_v and_o kiss_v as_o the_o popish_a guise_n be_v the_o same_o answer_n i_o make_v concern_v miracle_n wrought_v by_o god_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v the_o motive_n of_o lactantius_n i_o say_v they_o prove_v not_o that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v worship_v no_o more_o than_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o god_n with_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v any_o cause_n why_o the_o israelit_n shall_v worship_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n reg._n and_o as_o touch_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n which_o bristol_n blasphemous_o call_v his_o lord_n and_o god_n although_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n be_v grant_v forasmuch_o as_o the_o papist_n themselves_o affirm_v the_o sacrament_n to_o consist_v of_o accident_n as_o the_o sign_n but_o no_o accident_n be_v god_n or_o in_o god_n if_o any_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v by_o god_n at_o the_o celebration_n thereof_o as_o augustine_n and_o cyprian_n seem_v to_o avouch_v yet_o neither_o be_v the_o real_a presence_n prove_v by_o those_o miracle_n nor_o they_o try_v to_o be_v papist_n for_o write_v of_o such_o miracle_n of_o which_o if_o any_o man_n will_v see_v more_o let_v he_o resort_v to_o my_o answer_n unto_o heskin_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 24._o &_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 42._o unto_o the_o story_n of_o s._n bernard_n life_n we_o geve_v no_o credit_n as_o to_o a_o counterfeit_a fable_n and_o as_o little_a to_o the_o report_n of_o m._n point_n i●_n his_o book_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n testify_v the_o cast_n out_o of_o many_o devil_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n final_o it_o be_v alltogeather_o false_a that_o he_o say_v the_o jew_n religion_n be_v chaynged_a by_o christ_n into_o popery_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n against_o which_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o popish_a mass_n be_v blasphemous_a have_v take_v away_o all_o sacrifice_n &_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n heb._n 9_o concern_v the_o altar_n which_o christian_n have_v whereof_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o ca●e_v which_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n heb._n 13._o my_o answer_n be_v against_o heskin_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 60._o where_o that_o text_n &_o argument_n be_v handle_v of_o purpose_n the_o 27._o motive_n be_v the_o 35._o demand_n unity_n of_o the_o church_n a_o motive_n to_o believe_v in_o christ._n the_o discord_n bristol_n of_o protestant_n the_o inconstancy_n of_o protestant_n our_o saviour_n christ_n pray_v that_o his_o disciple_n may_v be_v fulke_n one_o in_o god_n &_o he_o their_o redeemer_n and_o this_o unitye_n all_o protestant_n retain_v notwithstanding_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o one_o article_n &_o any_o contention_n about_o ceremony_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v one_o in_o one_o god_n and_o christ_n although_o there_o be_v variance_n about_o circumcision_n &_o ceremony_n cyprian_a &_o cornelius_n the_o roman_n church_n &_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n be_v at_o unitye_n in_o christ_n although_o the_o one_o of_o they_o err_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n so_o be_v hierome_n &_o augustine_n although_o they_o mayneteyn_v contrary_a opinion_n about_o peter_n dissemble_v &_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o this_o very_o i_o except_v such_o schi●inaties_n as_o delight_v in_o contention_n which_o have_v always_o be_v against_o the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o papist_n see_v it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n it_o prove_v no_o more_o that_o they_o be_v those_o for_o who_o christ_n pray_v than_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o mahometiste_n which_o for_o these_o thousand_o year_n have_v keep_v great_a unity_n than_o the_o papist_n who_o church_n have_v be_v rend_v a_o sunder_o into_o so_o many_o head_n as_o there_o have_v be_v pope_n at_o once_o and_o that_o very_a often_o and_o for_o many_o year_n together_o there_o have_v be_v pope_n against_o pope_n council_n against_o council_n doctor_n against_o doctor_n order_n against_o order_n canonist_n against_o divine_n dissent_v in_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o original_a sin_n of_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o christian_a unity_n be_v as_o untrue_o deny_v unto_o we_o as_o false_o challenge_v unto_o they_o whatsoever_o he_o prate_v of_o lutheran_n zwinglian_o caluinist_n protestant_n and_o puritan_n the_o 28._o and_o 29._o motive_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o 34._o demand_n judge_n infallible_a in_o case_n of_o controversy_n the_o church_n bristol_n judgement_n be_v always_o infallible_a obedience_n of_o catholic_n to_o their_o superior_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a trinitaries_n bristrow_n brag_v that_o their_o church_n have_v judge_n infallible_a in_o case_n of_o controversy_n and_o we_o have_v not_o but_o fulke_n who_o be_v their_o judge_n the_o pope_n or_o the_o general_a council_n whether_o soever_o of_o these_o be_v neither_o be_v irrefragable_a for_o both_o have_v be_v control_v and_o find_v fault_n withal_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o and_o they_o themselves_o be_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n whether_o of_o these_o be_v irrefragable_a because_o the_o council_n have_v depose_v the_o pope_n &_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o obey_v the_o council_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a between_o eugenius_n the_o 4._o and_o the_o council_n of_o basil._n how_o infallible_a the_o church_n judgement_n be_v and_o always_o have_v be_v it_o serve_v not_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n until_o she_o prove_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o see_v she_o neither_o can_v do_v nor_o dare_v abide_v the_o trial_n of_o they_o she_o show_v plain_o that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n as_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o synod_n such_o as_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v which_o determine_v the_o controversy_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n protestant_n do_v glad_o acknowledge_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o the_o church_n to_o decide_v controversy_n and_o do_v willing_o submit_v themselves_o thereto_o the_o subjection_n of_o papist_n to_o their_o judge_n do_v no_o more_o prove_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v true_a than_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o mahometiste_n to_o their_o superior_n both_o in_o case_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n do_v justify_v their_o sect_n to_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o god_n what_o trinitary_n &_o other_o sectary_n be_v in_o polonia_n or_o elsewhere_o that_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o any_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v no_o part_n of_o our_o church_n so_o we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o excuse_v or_o defend_v they_o in_o the_o demand_n bristol_n complain_v of_o a_o unlearned_a christian_a which_o have_v be_v suffer_v to_o write_v a_o vain_a libel_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o vain_a lie_n for_o there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n learn_v or_o unlearned_a which_o will_v hold_v against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n so_o long_o as_o she_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o true_a church_n be_v in_o all_o matter_n necessary_a unto_o salvation_n but_o perhaps_o the_o unlearned_a christian_a have_v challenge_v the_o church_n of_o
rome_n to_o approve_v her_o doctrine_n by_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n which_o because_o the_o papist_n dare_v not_o attempt_v bristol_n require_v i_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o approbation_n &_o privilege_n of_o the_o say_a libel_n to_o show_v a_o bad_a shift_n better_a than_o none_o at_o all_o why_o they_o will_v not_o answer_v it_o for_o popish_a libel_n that_o be_v but_o cast_v abroad_o in_o writing_n we_o require_v no_o approbation_n nor_o privilege_n &_o dare_v not_o the_o papist_n confute_v a_o print_a libel_n before_o it_o have_v approbation_n &_o privilege_n the_o 29._o motive_n protestant_n themselves_o take_v thing_n upon_o our_o church_n credit_n the_o church_n authority_n s._n augustine_n motive_n what_o br●s●ow_v sor._n pture_n the_o protestant_n deny_v although_o we_o do_v receive_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o reherse_v upon_o their_o church_n credit_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o fulke_n be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o we_o receive_v nothing_o from_o they_o without_o due_a exammation_n the_o scripture_n we_o receive_v not_o upon_o the_o only_a credit_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n but_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o universal_a church_n of_o christ._n the_o cree_v article_n of_o doctrine_n term_n of_o person_n trinity_n consubstantiality_n sacrament_n etc._n etc._n we_o receive_v because_o they_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o scripture_n &_o not_o because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tell●th_v ●s_a they_o be_v true_a as_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o say_v be_v s._n augustine_n motive_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o a_o single_a or_o sole_a motive_n but_o a_o commotive_a or_o a_o argument_n that_o with_o other_o argument_n do_v move_v he_o for_o the_o say_v not_o moveret_fw-la but_o commoveret_fw-la and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o us._n provide_v always_o that_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o take_v for_o that_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n what_o then_o say_v bristol_n be_v it_o the_o protestant_n church_n whereof_o augustine_n mean_v or_o can_v you_o hold_v laughter_n when_o the_o question_n be_v ask_v no_o very_o for_o when_o the_o protestant_n church_n that_o it_o be_v now_o so_o call_v in_o this_o age_n like_a as_o it_o be_v call_v the_o homousian_o church_n in_o augustine_n time_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o prove_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o popish_a church_n which_o be_v but_o a_o heretical_a assembly_n depart_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n long_o since_o augustine_n departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n but_o bristol_n will_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n at_o who_o commanndement_n augustine_n beleve_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o protestant_n church_n because_o that_o church_n command_v he_o to_o believe_v the_o book_n of_o toby_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la &_o the_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonicallscripture_n which_o the_o church_n of_o protestant_n do_v deny_v but_o what_o it_o augustine_n be_v deceive_v to_o think_v he_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o he_o do_v not_o shall_v the_o protestant_n church_n be_v condemn_v s._n hierome_n who_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v more_o like_a to_o hear_v her_o voice_n because_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tell_v we_o a_o clean_a contrary_a tale_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o praefat_fw-la in_o proverbia_fw-la sicut_fw-la ergo_fw-la judith_n &_o tobiae_n &_o machabaeorum_n libros_fw-la legit_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o haec_fw-la duo_fw-la volumina_fw-la leg_n at_o ad_fw-la aedificationem_fw-la plebis_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la auctoritatem_fw-la ecclesiasticorum_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la confirmandam_fw-la therefore_o as_o the_o church_n in_o dead_a read_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n and_o tobias_n and_o of_o the_o macchabee_n but_o yet_o she_o receive_v they_o not_o among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o she_o may_v read_v these_o two_o book_n speak_v of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o common_a people_n but_o not_o for_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n do_v the_o church_n of_o protestant_n judge_v otherwise_o of_o these_o book_n than_o that_o church_n which_o thus_o instruct_v hierome_n what_o then_o i_o must_v say_v as_o bristol_n do_v s._n hierome_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o his_o time_n of_o our_o religion_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o be_v of_o a_o other_o judgement_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o now_o that_o it_o be_v then_o but_o whereas_o bristol_n charge_v we_o to_o to_o deny_v or_o at_o least_o to_o leave_v indifferent_a the_o canticle_n of_o solomon_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n s_n peter_n s._n john_n saint_n jude_n with_o the_o apocalips_n it_o be_v a_o devilish_a slander_n as_o god_n know_v and_o the_o wo●ld_n can_v bear_v we_o witness_v the_o 30._o motive_n be_v the_o 36._o and_o 37._o demaŭd_n storehouse_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o jews_n religion_n change_v into_o we_o by_o christ._n the_o church_n learning_n and_o wisdom_n the_o church_n store_n s._n irenaeus_n motive_n bristol_n bristol_n demand_v whether_o the_o popish_a church_n receive_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n fulke_n from_o christ_n have_v not_o keep_v they_o faithful_o without_o add_v minish_v or_o corrupt_v i_o answer_v no_o for_o the_o popish_a church_n receive_v none_o of_o christ_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ._n again_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v add_v whole_a book_n to_o the_o canon_n which_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n never_o receive_v nor_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ._n but_o those_o book_n say_v bristol_n have_v the_o protestant_n church_n rob_v we_o of_o w_z c_o be_v allow_v by_o approve_a counsel_n you_o hear_v in_o the_o last_o motive_n hieromes_n judgement_n of_o those_o book_n whereunto_o agree_v the_o council_n of_o laodi●ea_n cap._n 59_o augustine_n receive_v the_o bok_n of_o macchabee_n but_o with_o condition_n of_o sobriety_n in_o the_o reader_n or_o hearer_n aug●_n consec_fw-la ●pist_v gaudent_fw-la cap._n 13._o last_o of_o all_o the_o popish_a church_n either_o of_o fraud_n or_o negligence_n have_v corrupt_v a_o exceed_a great_a number_n of_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o her_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n w_o c_o she_o receve_v as_o only_o authentical_a the_o very_a first_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v corrupt_v and_o falsyfy_v for_o whereas_o the_o truth_n be_v ipsum_fw-la contret_fw-la caput_fw-la ●●●●_o the_o same_o seed_n shall_v bruise_v thy_o head_n the_o popish_a translation_n have_v ipsa_fw-la the_o same_o woman_n gen_n 3._o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o protestant_n church_n for_o this_o 100_o year_n as_o we_o confess_v ourselves_o occupy_v no_o bible_n nor_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o the_o scripture_n he_o lie_v out_o of_o all_o measure_n for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o have_v the_o scripture_n &_o in_o every_o nation_n where_o it_o be_v it_o have_v they_o in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n how_o many_o bibles_n be_v yet_o extant_a write_v in_o parchment_n 3_o or_o 4._o hundred_o year_n past_a in_o the_o english_a tongue_n beside_o other_o in_o the_o saxon_a language_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v as_o in_o france_n italy_n bohemia_n etc._n etc._n final_o whatsoever_o he_o bable_v of_o their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o store_n house_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o truth_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o greke_n church_n which_o they_o condemn_v as_o schismatical_a &_o heretical_a therefore_o this_o storehouse_n be_v no_o motive_n to_o prove_v the_o romish_a synagogue_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 37._o demand_n he_o ask_v whether_o as_o well_o protestant_n as_o other_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o old_a writer_n error_n &_o other_o heresy_n of_o heretic_n which_o make_v great_a show_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o popish_a churchs_n faith_n i_o answer_v the_o protestant_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n do_v &_o can_v disprove_v such_o show_n of_o scripture_n make_v by_o master_n of_o error_n &_o be_v no_o more_o move_v by_o the_o popish_a church_n authority_n than_o the_o apostle_n be_v move_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n to_o reprove_v all_o the_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o snperstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n therefore_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o depositorium_n dives_fw-la that_o rich_a storehouse_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v s._n ireneus_fw-la motive_n the_o 31._o motive_n be_v the_o 41._o demand_n send_v and_o teach_v of_o all_o divine_a
continence_n &_o so_o renounce_v the_o world_n that_o they_o possess_v nothing_o in_o proper_a as_o testify_v epiphanius_n and_o augustine_n and_o philaster_n affirm_v that_o they_o absteyn_v also_o from_o cate_v of_o flesh_n so_o that_o all_o thing_n consider_v aerius_n maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n as_o much_o as_o of_o the_o protestant_n that_o our_o preacher_n in_o pulpit_n praise_n god_n for_o the_o founder_n of_o college_n and_o school_n of_o learning_n by_o name_n what_o make_v this_o for_o allowance_n of_o their_o religion_n god_n be_v to_o be_v praise_v for_o such_o benefit_n as_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n or_o any_o member_n thereof_o even_o by_o turk_n and_o heathen_a man_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o very_a slow_a motive_n unto_o popery_n for_o whether_o the_o founder_n be_v good_a or_o evil_a man_n and_o what_o intent_n soever_o they_o have_v their_o benefit_n be_v now_o use_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o therefore_o god_n for_o they_o and_o their_o benefit_n be_v great_o to_o be_v praise_v the_o 37._o motive_n have_v never_o a_o demand_n that_o i_o can_v apt_o refer_v unto_o it_o the_o only_o know_v &_o undoubted_a mother_n of_o christ_n child_n bristol_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o the_o church_n be_v everlasting_a and_o visible_a the_o popish_a church_n have_v not_o only_o be_v y_z e_z only_o know_v fulke_n church_n and_o undoubted_a mother_n of_o christ_n child_n for_o these_o thousand_o year_n first_o because_o it_o be_v not_o of_o so_o many_o year_n continuance_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n have_v not_o be_v in_o high_a degree_n of_o wickedness_n before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n where_o notwithstanding_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n be_v take_v from_o the_o people_n second_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v never_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o the_o true_a child_n of_o christ_n church_n for_o their_o mother_n which_o be_v a_o steppemother_n and_o a_o persecuter_n of_o they_o three_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v never_o y_o e_z only_o repute_v church_n or_o mother_n of_o christ_n child_n of_o all_o they_o that_o profess_v christianity_n for_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n as_o great_a and_o as_o large_a as_o she_o be_v in_o the_o west_n will_v never_o so_o account_v the_o popish_a steppedame_n of_o rome_n but_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n four_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n member_n disperse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n under_o the_o tyranny_n both_o of_o the_o turk_n &_o the_o pope_n have_v in_o all_o time_n protest_v that_o y_o e_o romish_n apostolical_a synagoge_n be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o see_v of_o antichrist_n the_o place_n of_o mich._n 4._o and_o esa_fw-mi 61._o which_o he_o cit_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a you_o shall_v find_v answer_v with_o many_o other_o in_o my_o overthrow_n of_o stapletons_n fortre_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 13._o and_o whereas_o bristol_n confess_v that_o a_o mist_n may_v hide_v a_o hill_n that_o be_v never_o so_o high_a from_o some_o wicked_a sight_a man_n that_o be_v without_o it_o but_o never_o from_o they_o that_o be_v within_o it_o no_o merua●le_n if_o the_o spiritual_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v lift_v up_o above_o the_o top_n of_o all_o hill_n not_o in_o worldly_a glory_n but_o even_o unto_o heavenly_a dignity_n have_v long_o remain_v hide_v from_o they_o that_o have_v no_o spiritual_a eye_n at_o all_o but_o bristol_n think_v it_o strange_a that_o a_o mist_n shall_v continue_v a_o thousand_o year_n together_o then_o i_o ask_v he_o what_o have_v hinder_v the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o the_o world_n seduce_v by_o mahometistrie_n and_o gentility_n that_o for_o these_o thousand_o year_n they_o have_v not_o see_v the_o height_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n if_o he_o say_v not_o a_o mist_n about_o their_o church_n but_o a_o blindness_n in_o the_o other_o eye_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n the_o same_o i_o answer_v for_o the_o catholic_a disperse_v church_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o papist_n pretend_v that_o this_o thousand_o year_n they_o can_v not_o see_v although_o as_o i_o have_v often_o say_v papistry_n be_v not_o half_a so_o old_a in_o the_o great_a heresy_n and_o absurdity_n which_o now_o she_o maintain_v the_o 38._o motive_n be_v the_o 24._o demand_v also_o the_o 48._o and_o the_o 17._o celebration_n &_o operation_n of_o christ_n death_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o bristol_n the_o mass_n priesthood_n where_o christ_n work_v only_o fayte_n exorcise_a of_o devil_n in_o the_o popish_a churchis_n no_o celebration_n but_o a_o derogation_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n by_o the_o blasphemous_a fulke_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n but_o bristol_n in_o the_o 24._o demand_n ask_v we_o whether_o we_o be_v content_a to_o try_v religion_n by_o the_o priesthood_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n of_o christ_n church_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v first_o consent_n of_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n whereof_o also_o in_o the_o same_o demand_n he_o cavil_v that_o we_o have_v change_v the_o name_n &_o therefore_o have_v change_v the_o order_n the_o name_n i_o say_v of_o priesthood_n &_o priest_n must_v be_v consider_v either_o according_a to_o the_o etymology_n &_o derivation_n or_o else_o according_a to_o the_o present_a use_n thereof_o and_o according_a to_o the_o derivation_n we_o confess_v you_o to_o this_o word_n priest_n come_v of_o the_o greek_a word_n presbyteros_fw-la signify_v the_o same_o o●der_n which_o be_v institute_v by_o god_n like_a as_o the_o word_n bishop_n c●mming_v of_o episcopus_fw-la for_o which_o if_o any_o man_n use_v the_o name_n of_o elder_a &_o superintendent_n he_o vari_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n from_o the_o signification_n of_o presbyter_n and_o episcopus_fw-la and_o much_o less_o set_v up_o a_o new_a order_n as_o bristol_n most_o vain_o do_v cavil_n for_o in_o that_o sense_n we_o abhor_v not_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n &_o bishop_n but_o when_o according_a to_o the_o present_a use_n this_o word_n priest_n be_v take_v for_o he_o which_o in_o greke_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o latin_a sacerdos_n that_o be_v one_o appoint_v to_o offer_v a_o special_a sacrifice_n for_o which_o our_o english_a tongue_n have_v none_o other_o word_n but_o priest_n as_o bristol_n do_v well_o confess_v in_o this_o sense_n we_o deny_v that_o we_o have_v any_o special_a priesthood_n or_o priest_n among_o we_o but_o the_o only_a priesthood_n and_o high_a priest_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o general_a priesthood_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o sayncte_v of_o god_n apoc._n 16._o but_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n we_o have_v the_o same_o office_n of_o bishop_n elder_a or_o priest_n which_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v continue_a in_o the_o church_n until_o this_o time_n but_o this_o will_n bristol_n disprove_v by_o two_o reason_n first_o that_o ancient_a bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v make_v by_o bishoppès_n and_o priest_n and_o not_o by_o king_n and_o queen_n second_o they_o be_v make_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o even_o for_o the_o dead_a concern_v the_o first_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o ancient_a priest_n be_v so_o ordain_v but_o it_o be_v a_o most_o impudent_a slander_n that_o we_o be_v make_v bishop_n or_o priest_n by_o king_n or_o queen_n for_o the_o world_n know_v we_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o by_o the_o prince_n but_o that_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n since_o christ_n be_v ordain_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v utter_o false_a for_o albeit_o the_o ancient_a writer_n unproper_o use_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n yet_o do_v they_o never_o mean_v to_o set_v up_o a_o new_a priesthood_n or_o sacrifice_n to_o overthrow_v the_o only_a true_a priesthode_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n as_o in_o many_o place_n of_o their_o write_n most_v manifest_o do_v appear_v but_o only_o they_o do_v continue_v a_o memory_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n chris._n ad_fw-la heb._n cap._n 10._o hom._n 17._o and_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thankesgeve_a august_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 10._o cap_n 6._o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la christianorum_fw-la multi_fw-la unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la sumus_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la sacramento_n altaris_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la noto_fw-la frequentat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ubi_fw-la ei_fw-la demonstratur_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la oblatione_fw-la quam_fw-la offer_v ipsa_fw-la offeratur_fw-la this_o say_v augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o thankesgeve_a be_v the_o
impudent_o translate_v do_v compel_v mec_fw-la but_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v bristol_n have_v receive_v these_o book_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o rest_n indeed_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o tridentine_a council_n have_v so_o decree_v but_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v never_o receive_v they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o hicronime_n praef_n in_o proverb_n and_o other_o whereto_o i_o may_v add_v the_o judgement_n of_o origine_fw-la out_o of_o eusebhist_o lib._n 6._o cap._n 18._o tran_v russ._n with_o the_o council_n o_o laodicea_n can._n 59_o mark_v the_o plainness_n of_o this_o demonstration_n when_o the_o question_n &_o controversy_n be_v whether_o they_o or_o we_o be_v the_o church_n all_o scripture_n be_v for_o they_o &_o against_o we_o because_o the_o church_n that_o be_v they_o have_v thus_o &_o thus_o decree_v no_o marvel_v therefore_o if_o bristol_n appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o indifferent_a man_n that_o all_o our_o prate_n of_o y_z e_z scripture_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o as_o s._n peter_n say_v of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n our_o wrest_n and_o writhe_v of_o they_o by_o our_o own_o unlearnednes_n &_o unstableness_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n unity_n and_o universality_n to_o the_o schism_n and_o piece_n of_o luther_n &_o from_o thence_o to_o caluine_n &c_n &c_n for_o the_o church_n be_v the_o settle_a and_o unmoveable_a rock_n against_o which_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n no_o truth_n but_o all_o for_o it_o this_o be_v good_a a_o demonstration_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v to_o a_o vessel_n toss_v in_o the_o broad_a sea_n with_o wind_n &_o wave_n that_o in_o the_o haven_n there_o be_v great_a rest_n &_o security_n but_o not_o show_v what_o course_n they_o shall_v keep_v to_o come_v thither_o we_o by_o the_o only_a true_a lodestone_n pharos_n and_o heavenly_a cynosura_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o praise_v his_o holy_a name_n therefore_o have_v find_v the_o most_o happy_a haven_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n &_o by_o his_o help_n have_v cast_v out_o the_o anchor_n of_o faith_n so_o sure_o fix_v not_o in_o the_o sand_n but_o in_o the_o haven_n itself_o that_o all_o the_o cable_n of_o popish_a motive_n or_o blast_n of_o devilish_a doctrine_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o stir_v our_o ship_n from_o thence_o which_o course_n god_n grant_v they_o to_o keep_v who_o labour_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o doubtfulness_n ride_v not_o wilful_o among_o the_o rock_n of_o romish_a pride_n nor_o be_v obstinate_o set_v on_o the_o sand_n of_o man_n tradition_n but_o seek_v truth_n in_o humility_n to_o god_n glory_n &_o their_o safety_n beside_o these_o motive_n there_o be_v two_o demand_n which_o i_o can_v apt_o reduce_v to_o any_o of_o the_o motive_n namely_o the_o second_o which_o he_o term_v the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o last_o which_o he_o call_v apostasy_n in_o the_o former_a demand_n he_o ask_v we_o whether_o we_o have_v not_o read_v this_o argument_n use_v by_o chrisostome_n against_o the_o painim_n and_o jew_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n because_o his_o church_n have_v but_o a_o small_a beginning_n &_o many_o strong_a enemy_n to_o withstand_v the_o build_n thereof_o yet_o can_v or_o can_v never_o be_v suppress_v but_o contrariwise_o of_o a_o little_a spark_n have_v set_v all_o the_o world_n on_o fire_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v we_o have_v read_v this_o argument_n and_o allow_v of_o it_o then_o say_v bristol_n how_o have_v it_o be_v these_o many_o hundred_o year_n quite_o suppress_v yea_o and_o in_o chrisostomes_n time_n no_o church_n at_o all_o i_o answer_v that_o since_o it_o be_v first_o set_v up_o it_o be_v never_o for_o one_o hour_n quite_o suppress_v although_o by_o antichriste_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n it_o have_v be_v great_o oppress_v and_o in_o chrysostom_n time_n the_o church_n do_v open_o flourish_v although_o infect_v with_o some_o error_n yet_o hold_v strong_o the_o only_a tradition_n jesus_n christ_n which_o church_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o same_o universal_a church_n whereof_o our_o church_n at_o this_o day_n be_v a_o part_n with_o which_o church_n in_o chrysostoms_n time_n the_o popish_a church_n in_o that_o it_o dissent_v from_o we_o have_v nothing_o common_a except_o one_o or_o two_o error_n have_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o doctrine_n contrary_n unto_o it_o wherefore_o that_o argument_n stand_v the_o popish_a church_n be_v nothing_o underprop_a thereby_o which_o though_o it_o have_v a_o small_a beginning_n as_o the_o sect_n of_o mahomet_n yet_o grow_v it_o by_o sufferance_n of_o god_n without_o great_a withstand_v of_o strong_a enemy_n yea_o god_n send_v the_o effecacy_n of_o error_n that_o it_o may_v prevail_v and_o yet_o have_v not_o increase_v over_o all_o ●he_n world_n but_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n contain_v in_o one_o part_n of_o europa_n diminish_v where_o it_o be_v punish_v as_o in_o germany_n savoy_n denmark_n swetia_n and_o england_n grow_v only_o where_o it_o be_v either_o maintain_v by_o tyranny_n or_o tolerate_v by_o lenity_n and_o now_o to_o the_o last_o demand_n of_o apostasy_n wherewith_o he_o charge_v us._n first_o for_o change_v the_o priesthood_n whereupon_o must_v ensue_v a_o change_n of_o the_o law_n so_o this_o i_o answer_v we_o have_v change_v no_o priesthood_n institute_v by_o god_n but_o retain_v that_o eldership_n and_o ministry_n ordain_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n contrariwise_o the_o pope_n have_v change_v sacerdotium_fw-la which_o bristol_n confess_v to_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o presbiteratum_fw-la which_o be_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o common_o call_v both_o of_o he_o and_o we_o priesthood_n that_o sacrifice_a priesthood_n i_o say_v w_o c_o the_o apostle_n he._n 7._o affirm_v to_o be_v everlasting_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v the_o pope_n translate_v unto_o his_o shaveli_a g_n and_o set_v they_o up_o to_o offer_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n only_o can_v offer_v and_o by_o once_o offer_v find_v eternal_a redemption_n yea_o the_o priesthood_n of_o melchisedech_n which_o the_o lord_n by_o a_o oath_n confirm_v only_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ._n psal._n 100_o he_o have_v make_v common_a to_o all_o his_o massemonger_n therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v manifest_o make_v a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o law_n of_o christ._n the_o second_o argument_n by_o which_o bristol_n will_v charge_v we_o with_o apostasy_n be_v for_o receive_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o so_o many_o old_a heresy_n beside_o as_o he_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v a_o thousand_o more_o of_o their_o own_o invention_n this_o be_v affirm_v without_o all_o show_n of_o proof_n it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o deny_v and_o turn_v over_o unto_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n the_o three_o argument_n be_v for_o take_v from_o christian_a man_n so_o many_o argument_n of_o christ_n divinity_n as_o the_o invincible_a continuance_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o church_n the_o honour_n and_o virtue_n of_o cross_n and_o relic_n miracle_n exorcism_n unity_n sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v so_o many_o of_o these_o as_o be_v good_a and_o sufficient_a argument_n we_o hold_v still_o the_o unsufficient_a argument_n do_v rather_o disfornish_v then_o arm_v the_o christian_n faith_n which_o we_o have_v so_o strong_o fortify_v with_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o all_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n can_v prevail_v against_o it_o the_o four_o argument_n be_v for_o leave_v nothing_o undeny_v not_o father_n not_o counsel_n not_o tradition_n not_o scripture_n nor_o the_o only_a witness_n of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o church_n institution_n and_o depart_v from_o the_o father_n of_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n time_n agree_v with_o no_o christian_a time_n nor_o none_o with_o they_o for_o deny_v of_o canonical_a scripture_n it_o be_v a_o impudent_a slander_n as_o for_o father_n council_n tradition_n church_n authority_n we_o affirm_v or_o deny_v as_o they_o agree_v or_o dissagree_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o only_a certain_a witness_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v unto_o man_n which_o we_o think_v more_o reasonable_a than_o the_o papist_n do_v which_o deny_v father_n counsel_n tradition_n yea_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o submit_v all_o unto_o the_o i●dgement_n of_o their_o church_n now_o when_o then_o the_o controversy_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o devil_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o both_o part_n confess_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_a term_n although_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n piggius_n call_v the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o a_o dumb_a judge_n eccius_n term_v the_o write_a gospel_n a_o black_a gospel_n and_o a_o inkish_a
32._o that_o r._n the._n 260._o 3._o petram_fw-la r._n petrun_v 276._o 6._o den_n r._n doom_n 279._o 3._o deform_v r._n defame_n 280._o 14._o uncertain_o r._n unreverent_o l._n 38._o with_o r._n which_o 281._o 4._o challenge_v r._n call_v 297._o 17._o barbarita_n r._n borberitae_n 314._o 13._o cyrians_n r._n collyridianes_n a_o retentive_a to_o stay_n good_a christian_n in_o the_o trve_v of_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o w_n fulke_n against_o the_o motive_n of_o r._n bristol_n and_o by_o he_o direct_v to_o his_o friend_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n among_o such_o english_a papist_n as_o have_v write_v within_o these_o twenty_o year_n against_o the_o religion_n of_o god_n now_o maintain_v by_o public_a authority_n in_o this_o realm_n some_o have_v show_v great_a wit_n some_o much_o read_n some_o flow_a eloquence_n some_o all_o these_o indifferent_o but_o among_o they_o all_o none_o have_v show_v less_o wit_n learning_n or_o good_a utterance_n than_o this_o richard_n bristol_n so_o much_o the_o more_o do_v i_o marvel_v when_o i_o hear_v that_o many_o papist_n make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o his_o witless_a and_o senseless_a write_n but_o it_o fare_v with_o they_o as_o with_o little_a child_n to_o who_o new_a trifle_n seem_v always_o most_o worthy_a to_o be_v play_v with_o al._n and_o very_o i_o have_v think_v of_o all_o other_o lest_o to_o have_v deal_v against_o this_o pevish_a prater_n both_o because_o he_o bring_v no_o new_a matter_n but_o such_o as_o in_o other_o of_o his_o cote_n be_v with_o more_o colour_n of_o truth_n set_v forth_o before_o and_o also_o for_o that_o i_o have_v already_o make_v answer_n to_o ryshtons_n challenge_n which_o as_o i_o take_v it_o be_v that_o table_n of_o the_o church_n which_o bristol_n confess_v to_o contain_v all_o his_o demand_n which_o demand_n be_v almost_o all_o contain_v in_o his_o motive_n but_o my_o friend_n require_v i_o not_o only_o to_o answer_v this_o but_o all_o other_o write_n also_o of_o the_o papist_n what_o soever_o they_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o english_a tongue_n since_o the_o happy_a reign_n of_o our_o sovereign_a lady_n i_o have_v condescend_v to_o confute_v even_o that_o which_o deserve_v no_o confutation_n and_o somewhat_o the_o rather_o because_o bristol_n will_v have_v this_o alone_a to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a motive_n unto_o popery_n that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o gainsay_v most_o of_o their_o popish_a book_n have_v not_o dare_v i_o use_v his_o own_o word_n once_o to_o go_v about_o the_o answer_v of_o most_o of_o the_o say_a catholic_n book_n but_o be_v fain_o to_o get_v they_o forbid_v by_o proclamation_n although_o ourselves_o have_v provoke_v confident_o the_o catholic_n to_o write_v they_o wheruppon_o also_o he_o note_v that_o jewel_n challenge_n be_v turn_v into_o proclamation_n how_o right_o or_o true_o he_o that_o have_v but_o half_a a_o eye_n may_v see_v his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n contain_v never_o a_o argument_n or_o motive_n which_o be_v not_o repeat_v either_o in_o the_o treatise_n itself_o of_o motive_n or_o in_o the_o demand_n i_o will_v pass_v over_o and_o come_v to_o the_o first_o motive_n gather_v the_o principal_a content_n out_o of_o his_o own_o table_n as_o i_o have_v do_v with_o the_o rest_n name_v of_o catholic_n the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_n a_o certain_a mark_n of_o right_n catholic_n jewel_n unwar_n testify_v the_o roman_a bristol_n religion_n to_o be_v catholic_a la●rence_n hunfr●is_n trojan_a horse_n his_o pseudocatholic●_n luther_n consciens_fw-la the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v against_o he_o ponta●us_o err_v not_o who_o history_n humphrey_n himself_o unawar_n confirm_v for_o catholic_n say_v he_o be_v present_a as_o looker_n on_o and_o earnest_a defender_n what_o then_o ●_o but_o none_o such_o be_v moderator_n save_v only_o lie_v lord_n and_o unlearned_a heretic_n ergo_fw-la the_o first_o motive_n be_v the_o 6._o demand_n in_o which_o he_o will_v prove_v the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o who_o fulke_n soever_o it_o be_v give_v to_o be_v a_o certain_a mark_n of_o right_n catholic_n to_o be_v know_v as_o readely_a easy_o and_o certain_o by_o that_o name_n as_o such_o a_o city_n be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o london_n and_o such_o a_o country_n by_o the_o name_n of_o england_n if_o ever_o he_o learn_v any_o logic_n at_o oxford_n he_o leave_v it_o behind_o he_o or_o else_o lose_v it_o by_o the_o way_n when_o he_o run_v over_o the_o sea_n for_o if_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n whereby_o they_o be_v common_o call_v nothing_o bear_v a_o false_a name_n all_o idol_n be_v true_a god_n and_o saint_n all_o dead_a carcale_n be_v live_a man_n yea_o all_o heretic_n which_o be_v common_o call_v christian_n in_o respect_n of_o jew_n &_o turk_n be_v true_a christian_n but_o we_o must_v bring_v he_o a_o company_n of_o man_n common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n which_o prove_v heretic_n forsooth_o the_o arrian_n among_o themselves_o be_v common_o call_v bv_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o so_o repute_v and_o take_v when_o the_o true_a catholic_n be_v call_v homousian_n and_o heretic_n yea_o all_o heretic_n among_o the_o pagan_n be_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n which_o ●_o think_v be_v as_o glorious_a a_o name_n as_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n yet_o augustine_n say_v ●ee_n make_v much_o of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n cont._n ●●_o fund_z c._n 4._o t●net_n i_o postremò_fw-la etc._n etc._n last_o of_o all_o the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v hold_v i_o which_o not_o without_o cause_n amongst_o so_o many_o heresy_n this_o church_n alone_o have_v so_o obtain_v that_o whereas_o all_o heretic_n will_v have_v themselves_o to_o be_v call_v catholic_n yet_o to_o a_o strange_a which_o ask_v where_o man_n meet_v at_o the_o catholic_a church_n none_o of_o the_o heretic_n dare_v show_v either_o their_o minster_n or_o house_n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o augustine_n and_o bristol_n agree_v augustine_n make_v this_o name_n the_o last_o motive_n bristol_n the_o first_o augustine_n join_v it_o with_o many_o thing_n bristol_n make_v it_o alone_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a motive_n augustine_n in_o the_o next_o sentence_n after_o confess_v the_o plain_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n wheresoever_o it_o may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o motive_n of_o universality_n miracle_n consent_n succession_n and_o name_n of_o catholic_n by_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o may_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholke_n church_n although_o he_o ground_v no_o argument_n upon_o that_o wisdom_n which_o the_o manichee_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n his_o word_n be_v these_o apud_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la ubi_fw-la nihil_fw-la horum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la i_o invitet_fw-la ac_fw-la teneat_fw-la sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatiae_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la qu●e_fw-la quidens_fw-la sutam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la venire_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la ten●or_fw-la among_o you_o manichee_n say_v he_o where_o there_o be_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o may_v allure_v and_o hold_v i_o the_o only_a promisle_n of_o truth_n do_v sound_o which_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v show_v so_o manifest_a that_o it_o can_v come_v in_o doubt_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o be_v augustine_n judgement_n of_o such_o simple_a motive_n which_o with_o the_o truth_n may_v help_v to_o confirm_v it_o but_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o straw_n when_o they_o be_v allege_v against_o the_o truth_n wherefore_o see_v we_o make_v so_o plain_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o god_n word_n that_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v of_o it_o but_o such_o as_o will_v follow_v the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_a contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n against_o all_o such_o vain_a motive_n we_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o oppose_v the_o truth_n itself_o what_o a_o mockery_n be_v this_o that_o he_o say_v that_o an●eretike_n in_o germany_n be_v ask_v where_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v will_v point_v to_o ●●●●_o popish_a church_n admit_v this_o to_o be_v so_o do_v this_o prove_v the_o massing_n church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o france_n if_o you_o ask_v a_o papist_n which_o be_v y_o e_o reform_a church_n he_o will_v point_v you_o to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o congregation_n of_o true_a christian_n use_v to_o assemble_v do_v the_o papist_n therefore_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o protestants_n to_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o reform_a church_n i●_n he_o do_v not_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n prove_v no_o more_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o the_o
testimonijs_fw-la if_o this_o only_o be_v the_o question_n which_o or_o where_o the_o church_n be_v that_o they_o will_v plead_v nothing_o at_o all_o by_o public_a act_n of_o man_n but_o only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o say_v bristol_n the_o apostle_n be_v of_o our_o religion_n because_o chrysostom_n say_v admetus_n pop_v antioch_n that_o it_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o the_o dreadful_a mystery_n a_o remembrance_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o the_o dead_a this_o say_v bristol_n be_v mass_n for_o the_o dead_a how_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v in_o &_o how_o at_o length_n sacrifice_v of_o the_o mass_n be_v apply_v unto_o the_o dead_a i_o have_v show_v sufficient_o against_o allen_n lib._n 2._o ca._n 5._o if_o we_o shall_v admit_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v ordain_v of_o the_o apostle_n which_o some_o of_o the_o old_a writer_n do_v ascribe_v to_o their_o tradition_n we_o shall_v receive_v many_o thing_n that_o even_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v not_o observe_v as_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a thing_n to_o fast_o on_o sunday_n or_o to_o pray_v knel_v that_o oblation_n be_v to_o be_v make_v for_o man_n birth_n day_n etc._n etc._n which_o with_o diverse_a other_o superstition_n tertullian_n father_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a de_fw-fr coron_n nul_fw-fr hear_v therefore_o such_o manifest_a untruth_n be_v father_v upon_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n by_o most_o ancient_a writer_n what_o certainty_n can_v we_o have_v of_o their_o tradition_n without_o their_o own_o writing_n again_o s._n hierom_n say_v it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o fast_o 40_o day_n in_o the_o year_n if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o be_v the_o popish_a story_n false_a that_o make_v telesphorus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n author_n of_o that_o lenten_a fast_n eusebius_n show_v the_o great_a diversity_n of_o fast_v before_o easter_n li._n 5_o cap._n 26._o saying_n that_o some_o fast_v but_o 1_o day_n some_o 2_o day_n some_o more_o some_o 40_o hour_n of_o day_n &_o night_n this_o diversity_n prove_v ●●●●_o hierom_n untrue_o ascribe_v y_o it_o tradition_n to_o the_o apostle_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v keep_v uniform_o if_o it_o have_v any_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n cyprian_n say_v it_o be_v our_o lord_n tradition_n that_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o communion_n shall_v be_v mingle_v with_o t_o water_n but_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o so_o s._n paul_n with_o c_o deliver_v that_o with_o c_o he_o receive_v of_o christ_n say_v not_o so_o and_o yet_o cyprian_n contend_v principal_o for_o the_o use_n of_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n against_o the_o watery_a heretic_n that_o use_v only_a water_n it_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n with_o the_o ancient_a writer_n to_o defend_v every_o ceremony_n mhich_v be_v use_v in_o their_o time_n by_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o chief_a matter_n be_v the_o mass_n which_o say_v bristol_n s._n paul_n one_o of_o our_o religion_n make_v i_o marvel_v whether_o bristol_n write_v this_o for_o fool_n to_o believe_v or_o for_o wise_a man_n to_o laugh_v at_o when_o they_o themselves_o make_v gregory_n or_o scholasticus_n or_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v who_o auctor_fw-la of_o the_o canon_n and_o when_o they_o write_v how_o every_o piece_n be_v add_v by_o what_o pope_n what_o impudence_n be_v it_o to_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n make_v the_o mass_n and_o to_o call_v augustine_n to_o witness_v that_o which_o he_o good_a man_n do_v never_o think_v of_o and_o much_o less_o write_v who_o word_n bristol_n have_v mangle_v and_o falsify_v for_o thus_o he_o cit_v they_o ep._n 118._o cap_n 6._o totum_fw-la illum_fw-la agendi_fw-la ordinem_fw-la quem_fw-la universum_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la seruat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la esse_fw-la that_o by_o he_o be_v ordain_v this_o order_n of_o do_v which_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o church_n do_v keep_v in_o do_v of_o mass_n the_o word_n of_o augustine_n speak_v of_o receive_v the_o communion_n fast_v or_o before_o all_o other_o meat_n be_v these_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n caetera_fw-la cum_fw-la venero_fw-la ordinabo_fw-la vnde_fw-la intelligi_fw-la datur_fw-la quia_fw-la multum_fw-la erat_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o epistola_fw-la totum_fw-la illum_fw-la agendi_fw-la ordinem_fw-la insinuaret_fw-la quem_fw-la universa_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la seruat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la nulla_fw-la morum_fw-la diversitate_fw-la variatur_fw-la other_o thing_n will_v i_o set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v whereby_o it_o be_v give_v we_o to_o be_v understand_v because_o it_o be_v much_o that_o in_o a_o epistle_n he_o shall_v set_v forth_o that_o whole_a order_n of_o do_v which_o the_o whole_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n do_v observe_v that_o this_o thing_n be_v ordain_v by_o he_o which_o be_v vary_v by_o no_o diversity_n of_o manner_n understand_v the_o custom_n of_o receyve_v the_o communion_n fast_v which_o he_o say_v before_o be_v general_o observe_v in_o all_o place_n but_o of_o ordain_v the_o mass_n there_o be_v no_o title_n you_o see_v now_o how_o ●●●●_o apostle_n &_o especial_o s._n paul_n be_v of_o bristowe_v religion_n beside_o chrysostom_n hierom_n &_o cyp●ian_n the_o 10_o and_o 11_o motive_n be_v confuse_o contemn_v in_o the_o 34_o demand_n the_o courches_n judgement_n be_v always_o infallible_a when_o by_o bristol_n jewel_n the_o church_n of_o god_n die_v donatist_n and_o luciferian_o alive_a again_o in_o protestant_n s._n augustine_n and_o s._n hierome_n be_v of_o our_o religion_n protestant_n in_o their_o own_o conscience_n be_v against_o the_o church_n which_o be_v everlasting_a and_o visible_a no_o scripture_n against_o the_o catholic_n but_o all_o for_o they_o christ_n to_o be_v love_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o church_n for_o which_o there_o be_v plain_a prophecy_n then_o for_o christ_n himself_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o church_n judgement_n fulke_n to_o be_v always_o infallible_a yet_o will_v we_o never_o grant_v the_o popish_a church_n authority_n which_o fall_v so_o manifest_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o thereby_o show_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o malignant_a church_n &_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o be_v from_o y_z e_z beginning_n &_o shall_v continue_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n we_o all_o confess_v and_o defend_v wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o impudent_a slander_n of_o bristol_n to_o say_v that_o by_o jewel_n the_o church_n die_v within_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n and_o that_o the_o donatist_n and_o luciferian_o be_v reviue_v in_o protestant_n for_o we_o nether_a say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v out_o of_o all_o place_n except_o africa_n as_o the_o donatist_n nor_o that_o it_o be_v become_v a_o stew_n with_o the_o luciferian_o but_o the_o papist_n be_v more_o like_a to_o the_o donatist_n which_o say_v the_o church_n be_v perish_v out_o of_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n except_o europe_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o church_n they_o defend_v a_o stew_n and_o sink_v of_o all_o dolatrie_n superstition_n &_o ungodliness_n therefore_o augustine_n and_o hierom_n be_v not_o of_o bristowe_v religion_n for_o condemn_v those_o heretic_n to_o who_o bristol_n and_o his_o papist_n be_v more_o like_a than_o the_o protestant_n nether_a do_v protestant_n in_o their_o conscience_n think_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v against_o they_o because_o castalio_n a_o anabaptist_n translate_v ecclesiae_fw-la the_o church_n into_o reipublicae_fw-la the_o common_a wealth_n or_o because_o many_o use_v the_o name_n of_o congregation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a signification_n of_o this_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la as_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v that_o be_v not_o past_o all_o shame_n that_o the_o church_n be_v everlasting_a and_o visible_a to_o they_o that_o have_v such_o eye_n as_o the_o church_n be_v that_o be_v spiritual_a we_o never_o deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v visible_a to_o the_o world_n always_o that_o shall_v never_o be_v prove_v that_o no_o scripture_n be_v against_o the_o catholic_n we_o grant_v but_o that_o many_o scripture_n be_v against_o the_o papist_n it_o have_v be_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o time_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n geve_v testimony_n to_o christ_n &_o that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o church_n everlasting_a continuance_n be_v plain_a &_o evident_a it_o be_v no_o question_n between_o us._n but_o that_o the_o synagoge_n of_o romish_a papist_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o such_o credit_n or_o reverence_n be_v to_o be_v give_v that_o i_o say_v if_o bristol_n will_v burst_v for_o anger_n against_o the_o protestant_n he_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v the_o 11._o motive_n the_o practice_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n s._n paul_n and_o s._n augustine_n of_o our_o
truth_n caluins_n error_n about_o the_o trinity_n the_o ignorance_n of_o protestant_n such_o be_v jew_n elr_a ignorance_n also_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o bristol_n his_o godhead_n university_n of_o heretic_n &_o catholic_n degree_n take_v in_o university_n of_o heretic_n be_v add_v nihillate_v the_o ignorance_n of_o protestant_n the_o cause_n partly_o why_o there_o be_v so_o many_o atheist_n in_o england_n the_o church_n learning_n wisdom_n and_o continuance_n s._n augustine_n motive_n this_o motive_n contain_v nothing_o but_o a_o immederate_a arrogant_a brag_n of_o their_o study_v and_o teach_v of_o fulke_n truth_n with_o the_o great_a learning_n of_o their_o doctor_n and_o university_n and_o a_o proud_a disdamefull_a upbraid_v of_o our_o doctor_n and_o university_n of_o much_o ignorance_n and_o lack_n of_o learning_n which_o comparison_n if_o it_o have_v be_v utter_v by_o a_o man_n of_o excellent_a learning_n have_v be_v the_o less_o odious_a but_o be_v make_v by_o such_o a_o blind_a baiarde_n and_o blockheadded_a ass_n as_o be_v this_o bristol_n it_o be_v most_o intolerable_a caluive_v say_v he_o through_o ignorance_n err_v about_o the_o trinity_n say_v that_o god_n son_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v god_n of_o himself_o whereby_o it_o follow_v inevitable_o that_o there_o be_v two_o go_n for_o this_o slanderous_a and_o foolish_a cavil_n he_o cit_v institut_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 13._o num._n 23._o etc._n etc._n where_o be_v no_o such_o word_n nor_o matter_n but_o a_o confutation_n of_o heretic_n that_o deny_v the_o very_a essen_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n he_o cit_v also_o geneb_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la lib._n 1._o pa._n 43._o where_o if_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v as_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v yet_o undouted_o no_v such_o thing_n be_v mean_v thereby_o as_o bristol_n bable_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v signify_v he_o that_o be_v very_a god_n himself_o although_o beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n even_o as_o gregory_n nazianzene_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o de_fw-fr theologia_fw-la lib._n 5._o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n himself_o whereof_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o lord_n or_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n likewise_o he_o call_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d light_v itself_o and_o life_n that_o be_v very_a light_n and_o very_a life_n and_o yet_o he_o deny_v not_o that_o he_o be_v light_a proceed_v from_o light_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o unlearned_a cavil_v against_o caluine_n who_o more_o sound_o substantial_o &_o learned_o have_v write_v of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n than_o all_o the_o dunce_n aquine_n albert_n &_o the_o whole_a rabblement_n of_o schoolman_n of_o who_o bristol_n so_o vain_o do_v brag_v be_v ever_o able_a to_o attain_v unto_o who_o with_o their_o sophistry_n and_o barbarousnes_n have_v rather_o darken_v then_o set_v forth_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o those_o most_o excellent_a and_o divine_a mystery_n the_o like_a impudent_a cavil_v he_o bring_v against_o m._n jewel_n who_o no_o man_n i_o think_v without_o laughter_n can_v read_v to_o be_v charge_v with_o ignorance_n by_o blunder_a bristol_n for_o affirmiug_n christ_n to_o be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o his_o deity_n who_o the_o apostle_n express_o say_v by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o have_v offer_v himself_o heb._n 9_o ve_fw-la 11._o as_o for_o the_o comparison_n between_o the_o university_n of_o papist_n and_o we_o how_o vain_a it_o be_v all_o that_o be_v learned_a &_o of_o indifferent_a judgement_n can_v testify_v and_o concern_v degree_n and_o civil_a title_n of_o dignity_n take_v in_o our_o university_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o testimony_n of_o their_o learning_n which_o receive_v they_o we_o think_v they_o better_a be_v confirm_v by_o the_o prince_n authority_n from_o who_o all_o cidignity_n even_o by_o civil_a law_n be_v derive_v than_o such_o as_o be_v either_o give_v or_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n leaden_a bull_n the_o atheist_n &_o other_o unreligious_a mind_n in_o england_n be_v not_o nourish_v by_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o protestant_n but_o detest_v by_o their_o godly_a and_o learned_a judgement_n but_o if_o where_o there_o be_v most_o atheist_n there_o be_v great_a ignorance_n then_o even_o in_o italy_n &_o at_o rome_n under_o the_o pope_n nose_n where_o be_v most_o atheist_n of_o any_o region_n almost_o in_o the_o world_n be_v great_a ignorance_n where_o open_a blasphemy_n be_v as_o common_a yea_o oftentimes_o in_o the_o pope_n mouth_n as_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v among_o true_a christian_n what_o traveller_n in_o italy_n be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o whether_o he_o be_v protestant_n papist_n or_o neuter_n last_o of_o all_o if_o the_o chuch_v wisdom_n learning_n &_o continuance_n be_v s._n augustine_n motive_n the_o folly_n barbarousnes_n &_o late_o shine_v of_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v a_o motive_n to_o make_v we_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n for_o bristowe_v brag_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o carry_v away_o all_o credit_n of_o learning_n to_o popish_a doctor_n &_o university_n who_o order_n and_o reading_n he_o do_v the_o rather_o commend_v to_o be_v so_o excellent_a that_o man_n with_o c_o know_v he_o of_o late_a with_o perjury_n to_o have_v take_v degree_n in_o philosophy_n shall_v not_o marvel_v that_o he_o be_v so_o sudden_o transform_v into_o so_o great_a a_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n even_o by_o once_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o divinity_n which_o he_o suppose_v none_o of_o our_o doctor_n know_v what_o it_o mean_v such_o a_o goodly_a matter_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereby_o a_o man_n make_v most_o account_n of_o that_o he_o have_v learn_v last_o but_o albeit_o the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o learn_v but_o of_o truth_n yet_o if_o it_o will_v please_v the_o papist_n to_o try_v the_o learning_n of_o our_o doctor_n &_o university_n under_o indifferent_a judge_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v equal_a unto_o they_o that_o i_o say_v not_o in_o many_o thing_n they_o shall_v be_v find_v superior_a the_o 32._o motive_n be_v the_o 22._o demand_n aunuall_a celebrate_v of_o christ_n mystery_n the_o church_n bristol_n service_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v christ_n be_v to_o be_v beleve_v for_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o they_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o church_n ember_n day_n or_o enp_a day_n whichy_a our_o blind_a apostle_n do_v bold_o say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o pope_n leman_n the_o martyr_n be_v of_o our_o religion_n saint_n day_n lay_v down_o by_o protestant_n as_o our_o lady_n day_n s._n laurence_n day_n the_o assumption_n of_o our_o lady_n the_o church_n and_o serui●e_n of_o heretic_n to_o be_v refrain_v in_o pain_n of_o damnation_n against_o communicate_v with_o they_o a_o admonition_n to_o priest_n that_o say_v the_o now_o service_n heretic_n be_v idolater_n and_o heresy_n be_v idol_n the_o year_n of_o jubely_n 1575._o pilgrimage_n the_o sermon_n of_o heretic_n not_o to_o be_v hear_v their_o book_n not_o to_o be_v read_v christ_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o cross_n which_o workesh_a miracle_n vision_n for_o our_o religion_n the_o annual_a celebration_n of_o christ_n mystery_n by_o dumb_a ceremony_n and_o reading_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o fulke_n ignorant_a people_n although_o there_o be_v no_o heresy_n in_o the_o popish_a service_n nor_o no_o sufficient_a motive_n to_o embrace_v the_o popish_a synagogue_n as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n better_o apply_v than_o they_o be_v in_o all_o the_o lump_n of_o the_o popish_a solemnity_n they_o will_v procure_v small_a credit_n to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o rather_o the_o scorn_v and_o derision_n of_o turk_n jew_n and_o pagan_n as_o for_o the_o blind_a commentary_n of_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o which_o he_o magine_v we_o have_v all_o our_o understanding_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n how_o little_a we_o trust_v in_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o write_a commentary_n of_o caluine_n musculus_fw-la &_o such_o other_o the_o name_n of_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o solemn_a feast_n as_o bristol_n say_v do_v argue_v in_o deed_n the_o papist_n either_o to_o have_v invent_v they_o or_o to_o have_v abuse_v they_o as_o candelmas_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n &c_n &c_n but_o that_o the_o same_o be_v invent_v by_o that_o ancient_a church_n w_o c_o celebrate_v the_o nativity_n resurrection_n ascension_n of_o christ_n &_o cat_n be_v utter_o untrue_a for_o your_o own_o durand_n testify_v that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v of_o late_a pope_n institution_n w_o c_o
be_v of_o another_o faction_n but_o no_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n how_o vain_a a_o brag_n it_o be_v that_o the_o martyr_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n religion_n because_o they_o keep_v holy_a their_o day_n i_o leave_v to_o be_v answer_v with_o child_n laughture_n but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a offence_n i_o ween_v that_o protestant_n have_v put_v down_o most_o of_o the_o saint_n day_n &_o namely_o s._n laurence_n his_o day_n &_o all_o our_o lady_n day_n assumption_n &_o all_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v ask_v you_o wherefore_o you_o keep_v not_o s._n abraham_n day_n consider_v he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a nor_o s._n esaye_v &c_n &c_n what_o can_v you_o answer_v as_o for_o the_o lady_n day_n with_o c_o he_o complain_v to_o be_v put_v down_o by_o we_o namely_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n nativitye_n visitation_n &_o assumption_n the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o some_o of_o they_o more_o than_o 12_o hundred_o year_n for_o vrbanus_n the_o 6._o institute_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o visitation_n of_o some_o call_v the_o new_a find_v lady_n day_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1380._o as_o the_o very_a popish_a service_n of_o that_o day_n confess_v in_o the_o first_o lesson_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o nativity_n be_v not_o much_o elder_a as_o both_o the_o lesson_n &_o durand_n do_v acknowledge_v which_o affirm_v that_o one_o fulbertus_n a_o bishop_n cardinal_n make_v part_n of_o the_o service_n that_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o assumption_n can_v not_o be_v very_o ancient_a it_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o the_o barbarous_a hymn_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n that_o day_n but_o also_o by_o the_o lesson_n take_v out_o of_o bede_n by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o that_o goodly_a solemnity_n more_o th●n_n 700._o year_n after_o christ_n as_o a_o great_a number_n of_o other_o festivity_n which_o borrow_v their_o lesson_n out_o of_o bede_n do_v show_v sufficient_o that_o the_o popish_a service_n be_v nether_a so_o ancient_a nor_o so_o universal_a as_o the_o papist_n most_o impudent_o do_v affirm_v as_o for_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n marye_n be_v not_o full_a one_o hundred_o year_n old_a be_v decree_v by_o sixtus_n the_o 4._o in_o great_a despite_n of_o the_o dominike_n friar_n which_o do_v both_o preach_v and_o wright_n against_o it_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o intolerable_a fault_n assure_o commit_v in_o omit_v such_o festivity_n as_o bristol_n cry_v out_o nether_a we_o lack_v proper_a day_n of_o our_o lady_n as_o he_o say_v whereby_o he_o bewray_v the_o gross_a idolatry_n of_o papist_n which_o be_v not_o content_a to_o honour_v our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o his_o saint_n but_o the_o saint_n must_v have_v proper_a day_n dedicate_v to_o their_o honour_n alone_o and_o utter_o separate_v from_o the_o honour_n of_o christ._n for_o it_o satisfi_v not_o bristol_n that_o we_o keep_v holy_a the_o annunciation_n &_o purification_n of_o mary_n because_o the_o one_o of_o they_o say_v he_o be_v the_o conception_n the_o other_o the_o presentation_n of_o christ._n but_o papist_n keep_v her_o nativity_n visitation_n conception_n and_o assumption_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a day_n of_o our_o lady_n i_o pass_v over_o that_o he_o affirm_v the_o assumption_n of_o her_o body_n as_o a_o certain_a truth_n which_o the_o very_a popish_a lesson_n song_n on_o that_o festivitie_n leave_v in_o doubt_n and_o incline_v rather_o to_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n that_o the_o be_v assumpt_v only_o in_o soul_n likewise_o that_o he_o call_v she_o the_o lady_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n which_o title_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o only_o not_o give_v unto_o she_o but_o plain_o deny_v for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o lord_n eph._n 4._o both_o of_o man_n and_o of_o angel_n which_o do_v not_o only_o exclude_v all_o other_o lord_n of_o the_o masculine_a gender_n but_o much_o more_o all_o lady_n and_o general_o surmount_v all_o principality_n power_n lordship_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v both_o in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v eph_n 1._o 2._o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v therefore_o no_o lady_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n but_o a_o fellow_n servant_n of_o god_n with_o they_o luke_n 1_o 48._o apoc._n 22._o 9_o what_o excellency_n soever_o she_o have_v of_o god_n gift_n more_o than_o any_o of_o they_o that_o we_o keep_v no_o solemnity_n of_o s._n lawrens_n it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o contempt_n of_o his_o holiness_n nor_o for_o any_o worship_n of_o john_n baptist_n and_o the_o apostle_n that_o we_o solemnize_v their_o memory_n but_o therein_o the_o church_n use_v her_o liberty_n as_o in_o thing_n indifferent_a whereas_o bristol_n doubt_v not_o that_o if_o any_o of_o we_o will_v once_o be_v present_a at_o the_o reverend_a solemn_a do_v of_o the_o popish_a catholic_a service_n especial_o at_o christmas_n easter_n or_o such_o like_a time_n but_o it_o will_v melt_v our_o stony_a heart_n with_o joy_n etc._n etc._n he_o bewray_v many_o point_n of_o folly_n at_o once_o for_o first_o many_o thousand_o of_o we_o have_v be_v present_a and_o with_o grief_n of_o hart_n have_v see_v and_o behold_v the_o do_v of_o those_o idolatrous_a solemnity_n second_o he_o declare_v how_o he_o himself_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o pipe_v sing_a sense_a and_o swing_v in_o cope_v &c_n &c_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o spirit_n and_o verity_n from_o the_o carnal_a and_o counterfeit_a solemnity_n of_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n last_o of_o all_o how_o childish_o do_v he_o refer_v all_o catholic_a solemnity_n to_o the_o vain_a pomp_n use_v only_o in_o great_a and_o cathedral_n church_n when_o a_o thousand_o pavish_n beside_o in_o the_o poor_a country_n town_n have_v all_o their_o trash_n so_o beggarly_a and_o rude_o set_v forth_o that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_v the_o rest_n of_o this_o motive_n be_v spend_v in_o dissuade_v papist_n from_o learn_v our_o service_n or_o sermon_n or_o read_v of_o our_o book_n by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o so_o much_o mistrust_v his_o cause_n that_o he_o dare_v not_o once_o permit_v his_o disciple_n to_o inquire_v of_o it_o or_o to_o hear_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_n as_o for_o popish_a priest_n that_o say_v the_o new_a as_o he_o term_v it_o service_n i_o will_v they_o will_v follow_v his_o council_n to_o say_v it_o no_o more_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n or_o idolater_n it_o be_v a_o plain_a case_n but_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v heretic_n which_o teach_v nothing_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o that_o they_o be_v idolater_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v their_o life_n rather_o than_o to_o worship_v idol_n but_o the_o year_n of_o jubely_n be_v a_o great_a motive_n for_o great_a fool_n to_o embrace_v popery_n which_o jubely_n pope_n boniface_n the_o 8._o do_v first_o institute_n in_o the_o fear_fw-mi of_o our_o lord_n 1300_o by_o apish_a or_o rather_o devilish_a imitation_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o filthy_a luker_n sake_n beside_o the_o horrible_a blashemye_n of_o full_a remission_n of_o sin_n grant_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o year_n which_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ._n as_o for_o the_o jubely_n which_o bristol_n speak_v of_o anno_fw-la 1575._o be_v of_o a_o late_a institution_n ordain_v to_o be_v keep_v every_o 25._o year_n because_o it_o be_v to_o long_o for_o the_o pope_n to_o tarry_v until_o the_o hundred_o and_o 50._o year_n as_o boniface_n appoint_v this_o be_v the_o antiquity_n of_o that_o jubely_n pardon_n and_o pilgrimage_n the_o miracle_n which_o s._n augustine_n report_v of_o innocentia_fw-la that_o be_v warn_v in_o her_o dream_n to_o desire_v the_o first_o woman_n which_o she_o do_v meet_v return_v from_o baptism_n at_o easter_n to_o sign_n her_o breast_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o which_o be_v a_o canker_n for_o cure_v of_o which_o she_o have_v long_o pray_v unto_o god_n declare_v in_o deed_n the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o work_v health_n where_o it_o please_v he_o but_o nothing_o at_o all_o make_v for_o popery_n for_o if_o it_o have_v please_v god_n at_o any_o ●yme_n to_o work_v wonder_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n it_o follow_v not_o thereof_o either_o that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n have_v any_o virtue_n in_o it_o more_o than_o that_o hem_n of_o christ_n garment_n have_v by_o which_o a_o woman_n also_o be_v heal_v or_o else_o that_o a_o ordinary_a ceremonye_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o sign_v
with_o the_o cross_n more_o than_o of_o touchinge_v the_o hem_n of_o any_o garment_n in_o the_o 22._o demand_n he_o ask_v whether_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a service_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n there_o be_v not_o always_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o sayncte_v the_o ceremony_n use_v by_o papist_n in_o baptism_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v no._n cyprian_n who_o he_o quote_v ep._n 66._o speak_v not_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o any_o place_n but_o of_o oblation_n for_o the_o fall_a a_o sleep_n that_o be_v thanks_n give_v for_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o name_v they_o in_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n which_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o eusebius_n that_o error_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v in_o deed_n receyve_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o church_n which_o begin_v first_o among_o the_o montanist_n the_o ceremony_n of_o exuf●lation_n and_o exorcism_n be_v not_o idle_o use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o they_o be_v of_o the_o papist_n but_o when_o the_o person_n to_o be_v baptize_v be_v sensible_o possess_v with_o devil_n as_o appear_v in_o cyprian_n lib._n 3._o ep._n 7._o ad_fw-la magnum_fw-la likewise_o where_o he_o demand_v the_o whether_o we_o read_v at_o any_o time_n when_o mass_n do_v first_o come_v into_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v if_o by_o mass_n he_o mean_v that_o popish_a form_n of_o sacrifice_v which_o they_o use_v and_o call_v mass_n we_o read_v of_o every_o part_n of_o it_o when_o and_o by_o what_o pope_n it_o come_v in_o by_o mass_n he_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o make_v it_o a_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o answer_v that_o we_o read_v all_o these_o heresy_n to_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o as_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v prove_v that_o it_o come_v not_o from_o the_o apostle_n beside_o that_o some_o of_o they_o ascribe_v it_o to_o gregory_n and_o gregory_n himself_o to_o scholasticus_n so_o that_o be_v of_o some_o antiquity_n it_o contain_v in_o it_o matter_n repugnant_a even_o unto_o the_o popish_a heresy_n for_o first_o it_o call_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o offer_v they_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n second_o after_o consecration_n it_o call_v the_o sacrament_n panem_fw-la sanctum_fw-la vit●e_fw-la aeternae_fw-la &_o calicem_fw-la salutis_fw-la aeternae_fw-la holy_a bread_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o cup_n of_o eternal_a health_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o pray_v god_n to_o accept_v it_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n three_o the_o priest_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v command_v ●●●●_o same_o to_o be_v carry_v by_o a_o angellinto_o his_o high_a alter_fw-la etc._n etc._n four_o he_o pray_v for_o all_o they_o that_o have_v receyve_v the_o same_o sacrament_n with_o he_o which_o can_v not_o stand_v with_o a_o private_a mass_n final_o that_o it_o come_v not_o evident_o of_o the_o apostle_n as_o bristol_n impudent_o affirm_v it_o may_v be_v evident_o see_v by_o this_o that_o diverse_a saint_n be_v name_v in_o it_o which_o live_v more_o than_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n as_o cosmus_n damiaius_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o find_v more_o fault_n with_o it_o then_o with_o gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la te_fw-la deum_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v plentiful_o declare_v by_o many_o volume_n and_o namely_o by_o bishop_n of_o sarum_n in_o his_o sermon_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o against_o harding_n the_o 33._o motive_n be_v the_o 21._o demand_n ecclesiastical_a monument_n and_o live_n church_n the_o work_n of_o the_o catholic_n university_n of_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n protestant_n be_v usurper_n of_o other_o man_n live_n although_o a_o great_a number_n of_o church_n that_o be_v now_o bristol_n stand_v be_v build_v by_o papist_n and_o for_o popery_n yet_o not_o all_o for_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o ancient_a cathedral_n church_n be_v neither_o build_v by_o papist_n nor_o for_o popery_n but_o by_o christian_a prince_n and_o for_o the_o use_n of_o christian_a fulke_n religion_n of_o such_o church_n write_v euseb._n in_o vita_fw-la const._n lib._n 30._o &_o hist._n eccl._n lib._n 10._o cap._n 4._o where_o be_v but_o one_o table_n or_o altar_n which_o be_v removable_a &_o make_v of_o board_n place_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n contrary_n to_o the_o popish_a fashion_n which_o have_v many_o altar_n and_o all_o against_o wall_n or_o pillar_n and_o the_o chief_a against_o the_o far_a wall_n most_o common_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a reason_n of_o bristol_n that_o they_o be_v build_v for_o popery_n because_o they_o be_v build_v in_o length_n to_o the_o east_n or_o in_o form_n of_o a_o crosse._n for_o many_o be_v build_v round_o and_o those_o with_o cross_a isle_n be_v most_o unmeete_a for_o mass_n at_o the_o high_a altar_n which_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o cross_a yle_n can_v see_v likewise_o bede_n who_o bristol_n in_o the_o demand_n without_o shame_n do_v quote_v for_o the_o contrary_a testify_v that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o speak_v of_o niva_fw-la one_o that_o be_v bring_v up_o at_o rome_n which_o at_o a_o place_n call_v candida_fw-la casa_fw-la now_o whiterne_a make_v a_o church_n of_o stone_n of_o a_o other_o fation_n than_o the_o britan_n be_v wont_v to_o build_v these_o be_v y_z e_z word_n of_o bede_n of_o stapletons_n translation_n and_o concern_v the_o sound_n of_o ecclesiastical_a live_n and_o university_n we_o know_v that_o the_o first_o dotation_n of_o church_n be_v by_o christian_a prince_n what_o if_o superstition_n have_v add_v any_o thing_n to_o they_o nether_a the_o build_n of_o church_n not_o the_o sound_n of_o live_n and_o university_n do_v prove_v the_o builder_n or_o founder_n to_o be_v of_o good_a religion_n not_o yet_o condemn_v the_o user_n of_o such_o church_n live_n and_o university_n of_o usurp_a or_o sacrilege_n the_o idolatrous_a church_n of_o pantheon_n at_o rome_n be_v turn_v into_o maria_n rotunda_fw-la gregory_n counsel_v augustine_n to_o convert_v the_o idolatrous_a church_n of_o the_o saxon_n to_o the_o use_n of_o christian_a religion_n beda_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 30._o the_o university_n of_o athens_n found_v by_o heathen_a philosopher_n be_v after_o frequent_v by_o christian_a scholar_n as_o testify_v gregory_n nazianzene_n in_o monod_n and_o if_o we_o believe_v our_o english_a story_n y_z e_z living_n of_o the_o idolatrous_a flamen_v &_o arch_n flamen_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o mayntenanc_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n the_o 34._o motive_n be_v the_o 23._o demand_n heretic_n be_v ape_n of_o the_o catholic_n the_o church_n learning_n bristol_n and_o wisdom_n the_o communion_n book_n a_o apish_a imitation_n of_o our_o mass_n book_n the_o manner_n of_o ape_n be_v to_o counterfeit_v and_o follow_v visible_a fulke_n action_n without_o any_o meaning_n or_o profit_n such_o imitation_n have_v we_o none_o but_o the_o apish_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v full_o of_o such_o follow_v of_o the_o gesture_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o mass_n and_o other_o ceremony_n yea_o they_o counterfeit_v the_o voice_n of_o pilate_n &_o judas_n in_o read_v the_o gospel_n on_o palm_n sunday_n they_o play_v the_o ape_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o conjure_v the_o devil_n in_o baptism_n yea_o they_o be_v the_o ape_n of_o aaron_n &_o the_o levitical_a priest_n in_o their_o robe_n sense_v &_o sacrifice_v the_o very_a pagan_n they_o follow_v in_o ceremony_n &_o festivity_n as_o their_o own_o durand_n confess_v in_o who_o rationale_n divinorum_fw-la you_o may_v see_v the_o learning_n &_o wisdom_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o all_o their_o mischievous_a mystery_n as_o for_o we_o we_o imitate_v nothing_o that_o they_o do_v to_o get_v commendation_n by_o similitude_n of_o their_o do_n but_o rather_o we_o abhor_v whatsoever_o have_v but_o a_o show_n of_o popery_n if_o we_o use_v any_o thing_n right_o which_o be_v abuse_v of_o they_o we_o be_v not_o therefore_o ape_n of_o they_o but_o they_o ape_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o doctrine_n we_o do_v true_o follow_v as_o they_o vain_o imitate_v and_o in_o imitation_n false_o pervert_v their_o example_n that_o the_o communion_n book_n be_v a_o apish_a imitation_n of_o the_o mass_n book_n be_v a_o most_o shameless_a lie_v for_o what_o similitude_n have_v our_o ministration_n of_o the_o communion_n with_o their_o mass_n any_o more_o than_o our_o doctrine_n with_o they_o if_o any_o thing_n in_o ceremony_n or_o discipline_n have_v be_v tolerate_v not_o
altogether_o purge_v from_o all_o similitude_n of_o popish_a action_n by_o yield_v unto_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o weak_a sort_n yet_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n perfect_a in_o herself_o and_o need_v not_o to_o borrow_v of_o any_o sect_n any_o thing_n for_o her_o perfect_a furniture_n in_o doctrine_n ceremony_n or_o discipline_n but_o have_v absolute_a rule_n to_o direct_v she_o in_o any_o of_o these_o express_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n the_o hold_v of_o counsel_n excommunication_n suspension_n public_a solemnize_n of_o marriage_n with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o same_o punish_v of_o heretic_n by_o death_n etc._n etc._n be_v all_o manifest_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n probat_fw-la of_o testament_n and_o such_o like_a matter_n pertain_v to_o the_o civil_a law_n and_o whereas_o bristol_n say_v we_o can_v not_o tell_v that_o we_o shall_v use_v baptisinge_v of_o man_n more_o than_o washinge_v of_o foot_n or_o this_o less_o than_o that_o or_o one_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o not_o the_o other_o except_o we_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o popish_a church_n it_o be_v a_o great_a falsehood_n for_o although_o we_o may_v allege_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o do_v not_o accept_v that_o action_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o sacrament_n yet_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v manifest_a which_o do_v not_o institute_v a_o sacrament_n or_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a grace_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o we_o but_o only_o give_v we_o a_o example_n thereby_o of_o service_n able_a humility_n one_o to_o a_o other_o joan._n 13._o 12._o wherefore_o no_o more_o in_o this_o then_o in_o any_o other_o matter_n do_v we_o take_v any_o light_n out_o of_o the_o book_n and_o do_n of_o those_o owl_n that_o fly_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o man_n tradition_n but_o only_o out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o light_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o foot_n that_o we_o need_v not_o like_a ape_n counterfeit_v external_a toy_n as_o they_o do_v but_o be_v follower_n of_o god_n as_o wellbeloved_a child_n we_o may_v walk_v in_o love_n as_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o and_o so_o fa●re_v to_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o other_o man_n as_o we_o see_v plain_o that_o they_o have_v follow_v christ._n the_o 35._o motive_n be_v the_o 25._o demand_n state_n of_o perfection_n monk_n &_o monastery_n parliament_n bristol_n religion_n we_o confess_v that_o we_o have_v no_o state_n of_o perfection_n in_o fulke_n this_o life_n among_o we_o which_o to_o affirm_v in_o any_o mortal_a man_n be_v blasphemye_n against_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n as_o for_o monk_n and_o friar_n name_n eremites_n &c_n &c_n none_o be_v far_o from_o a_o christian_a or_o honest_a life_n than_o they_o as_o the_o world_n know_v sufficient_o and_o therefore_o by_o law_n they_o and_o their_o monastery_n be_v just_o subvert_v as_o for_o the_o solitary_a man_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n dwell_v by_o themselves_o or_o in_o the_o desert_n place_v call_v m●nach●_n anchoritae_fw-la or_o eremit●e_fw-la these_o popish_a order_n of_o who_o subversion_n bristol_n complain_v be_v no_o more_o like_a unto_o they_o than_o ape_n and_o monkey_n be_v to_o man_n and_o woman_n the_o communitye_n of_o good_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 4._o be_v none_o other_o than_o such_o as_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v among_o all_o true_a christian_n which_o be_v not_o as_o bristol_n ignorauntlye_o and_o impudent_o affirm_v to_o live_v without_o propriety_n of_o good_n have_v all_o thing_n in_o a_o anabaptisticall_a community_n but_o that_o they_o account_v nothing_o of_o that_o they_o possess_v to_o be_v their_o own_o when_o the_o necessity_n of_o their_o brethren_n require_v the_o use_n thereof_o act._n 4._o 32._o &_o 34._o and_o act._n 5._o 4._o peter_n affirm_v that_o both_o the_o land_n and_o the_o price_n thereof_o be_v in_o the_o proprietye_n of_o ananias_n so_o that_o he_o may_v have_v retain_v either_o his_o land_n or_o the_o whole_a price_n thereof_o but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n and_o will_v bear_v the_o church_n in_o hand_n that_o he_o have_v bring_v the_o whole_a price_n when_o he_o withdraw_v a_o part_n thereof_o as_o for_o virgin_n although_o there_o be_v few_o amongst_o we_o that_o boast_v of_o that_o profession_n yet_o be_v there_o more_o both_o man_n and_o woman_n which_o free_o keep_v their_o purpose_n of_o virginity_n than_o be_v among_o those_o popish_a vow_a cloystrall_n the_o 36._o motive_n be_v the_o 46._o demand_n the_o state_n of_o our_o predecessor_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o ground_n of_o building_n christian_n monument_n university_n of_o heretikès_fw-fr bristol_n and_o catholic_n protestant_n be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o father_n the_o demand_n serve_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o motive_n fulke_n for_o in_o the_o motive_n he_o confess_v that_o we_o will_v not_o condemn_v our_o ancestor_n that_o have_v dye_v these_o many_o hundred_o year_n in_o popish_a ignorance_n nor_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n which_o have_v hold_v some_o error_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v hold_v but_o in_o the_o demand_n he_o ask_v if_o all_o these_o be_v damn_v in_o hell_n if_o not_o then_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n &_o those_o error_n be_v truth_n i_o answer_v we_o deal_v not_o with_o condemnation_n of_o man_n for_o lack_v of_o two_o cause_n which_o make_v a_o judge_n the_o one_o austerity_n the_o other_o be_v knowledge_n concern_v the_o first_o it_o pertain_v only_o to_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a who_o office_n we_o dare_v not_o usurp_v otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v command_v we_o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n out_o of_o his_o word_n concern_v the_o latter_a we_o take_v not_o upon_o we_o to_o know_v either_o the_o faith_n or_o repentance_n of_o they_o that_o die_v before_o our_o time_n and_o therefore_o we_o commit_v their_o judgement_n to_o god_n but_o general_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o such_o as_o hold_v the_o only_a foundation_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n in_o a_o true_a faith_n shall_v be_v save_v although_o they_o build_v upon_o this_o foundation_n chaff_n straw_n wood_n etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 3._o and_o therefore_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o s._n augustine_n chrysostom_n hierom_n gregory_n bernard_n &_o many_o thousand_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o great_a blindness_n hold_v the_o same_o only_a foundation_n may_v be_v save_v notwithstanding_o the_o chaff_n and_o stubble_n of_o a_o few_o error_n which_o the_o former_a sort_n do_v hold_v or_o a_o number_n of_o error_n and_o superstition_n wherewith_o the_o late_a sort_n be_v defile_v as_o for_o frances_n and_o dominike_n such_o late_a leader_n of_o the_o locust_n we_o rather_o think_v they_o be_v return_v into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v then_o that_o they_o be_v saint_n in_o heaven_n but_o if_o we_o excuse_v the_o rest_n by_o ignorance_n bristol_n ask_v why_o we_o condemn_v not_o augustine_n which_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o our_o doctrine_n because_o he_o condemn_v it_o for_o most_o wicked_a heresy_n in_o aerius_n jovinian_a and_o vigilantius_n who_o although_o they_o be_v our_o father_n he_o say_v we_o be_v ashamed_a to_o bless_v their_o memory_n first_o concern_v jovinian_a although_o he_o hold_v a_o heresy_n in_o not_o prefer_v virginity_n before_o marriage_n in_o some_o respect_n yet_o have_v we_o nothing_o to_o do_v with_o he_o for_o we_o hold_v not_o that_o opinion_n which_o if_o we_o do_v yet_o be_v it_o no_o damnable_a heresy_n touch_v aerius_n he_o be_v condemn_v of_o augustine_n for_o a_o arrian_n his_o opinion_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a although_o it_o be_v not_o like_v of_o augustine_n yet_o do_v he_o in_o no_o place_n condemn_v it_o for_o most_o wicked_a heresy_n as_o bristol_n call_v it_o but_o that_o he_o do_v allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o ignorance_n even_o in_o s._n augustine_n as_o that_o he_o think_v the_o communion_n necessary_a for_o infant_n cont._n dvas_fw-la ep_n pelag._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o as_o for_o vigilantius_n i_o find_v he_o not_o reckon_v either_o by_o epiphanius_n or_o augustine_n for_o a_o heretic_n or_o for_o one_o that_o err_v in_o doctrine_n although_o hierom_n do_v write_v so_o bitter_o against_o he_o who_o likewise_o do_v write_v against_o augustine_n and_o ruffinus_n yet_o be_v nether_a of_o both_o account_v for_o heretic_n and_o aerius_n as_o he_o hold_v some_o truth_n with_o we_o against_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a so_o hold_v he_o also_o much_o popish_a superstition_n and_o error_n for_o like_o the_o order_n of_o carthusian_n they_o of_o his_o sect_n admit_v none_o to_o their_o fellowship_n but_o such_o as_o profess_a
sacrifice_n of_o christian_n we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n which_o thing_n also_o the_o church_n frequent_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n well_o know_v to_o the_o faithful_a where_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o she_o that_o in_o the_o same_o oblation_n which_o she_o offer_v she_o herself_o be_v offer_v likewise_o cap._n 20._o speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n he_o say_v per_fw-la hoc_fw-la &_o sacerdos_n est_fw-la ipse_fw-la offerens_fw-la ipse_fw-la &_o oblatio_fw-la cvius_fw-la rei_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la quotidianum_fw-la esse_fw-la voluit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la cum_fw-la ipsius_fw-la corporis_fw-la ipse_fw-la sit_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o ipsius_fw-la capitis_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sit_fw-la corpus_fw-la tam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la per_fw-la ipsum_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la per_fw-la ipsam_fw-la suetus_fw-la offerri_fw-la by_o this_o also_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n he_o himself_o offering_n and_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o oblation_n of_o which_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n see_v that_o of_o she_o be_v his_o body_n he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o of_o he_o be_v her_o head_n she_o be_v the_o body_n as_o well_o she_o by_o he_o as_o he_o by_o she_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v offer_v so_o that_o the_o error_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a which_o prevail_v within_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v at_o the_o first_o without_o blasphemy_n of_o sacrifice_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a in_o this_o four_o and_o twenty_o demand_n bristol_n as_o k_v further_a whether_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n there_o be_v not_o subdeacons_n acolytes_n exorcist_n door_n keeper_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v there_o be_v such_o office_n appoint_v for_o aid_n of_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n whereof_o the_o papist_n retain_v only_o the_o name_n without_o any_o exercise_n of_o the_o office_n and_o the_o office_n be_v such_o for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o be_v proper_a for_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o as_o they_o have_v no_o instruction_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o church_n so_o by_o the_o church_n they_o be_v think_v unnecessary_a in_o the_o forty_o eight_o demand_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o this_o motive_n he_o ask_v whether_o their_o church_n only_o have_v not_o grace_n in_o her_o sacrament_n merit_v in_o her_o worker_n force_n in_o her_o word_n power_n in_o her_o teach_n her_o child_n the_o sad_a sort_n of_o people_n man_n of_o best_a order_n in_o family_n town_n and_o city_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v the_o popish_a church_n have_v no_o sacrament_n but_o such_o as_o she_o false_o usurp_v namely_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n which_o as_o augustine_n say_v against_o the_o donatist_n may_v be_v give_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o have_v no_o virtue_n or_o grace_n but_o in_o the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o merit_n of_o work_n be_v blasphemous_a against_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n vnde_fw-la mihi_fw-la tantum_fw-la meriti_fw-la est_fw-la say_v ambrose_n admetus_n virgin_n exhort_v cvi_fw-la indulgentia_fw-la pro_fw-la coronaest_n whence_o shall_v i_o have_v so_o great_a merit_n see_v mercy_n be_v my_o crown_n and_o touch_v force_n of_o her_o word_n and_o power_n of_o her_o teach_n if_o there_o be_v not_o great_a terror_n of_o her_o tyranny_n and_o allurement_n in_o her_o worldly_a glory_n she_o shall_v have_v few_o partaker_n for_o except_v the_o efficacy_n of_o error_n which_o god_n have_v send_v for_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o unbelieve_a world_n she_o have_v no_o power_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o convert_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o christ_n but_o external_a enticement_n like_o mermaid_n song_n to_o seduce_v man_n to_o their_o destruction_n and_o as_o for_o her_o child_n the_o papist_n although_o some_o be_v more_o modest_a than_o the_o rest_n as_o there_o be_v even_o among_o the_o turk_n and_o heathen_a none_o eat_v more_o light_n vain_a disorder_a proud_a proud_a deceitful_a covetous_a worldly_a luxurious_a malicious_a and_o cruel_a not_o only_o at_o rome_n and_o abroad_o where_o they_o be_v in_o their_o ruff_n but_o even_o here_o in_o england_n where_o they_o have_v not_o all_o their_o will_n i_o except_o a_o few_o which_o be_v deceive_v not_o of_o malice_n but_o of_o ignorance_n god_n in_o time_n may_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o they_o be_v not_o dissembler_n and_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o absent_v themselves_o from_o it_o furthermore_o how_o e_z malicious_o he_o slaunder_v the_o church_n of_o god_n let_v god_n himself_o revenge_v where_o he_o say_v we_o have_v no_o preach_v of_o penance_n no_o grace_n in_o sacrament_n nothing_o but_o sin_n in_o good_a work_v although_o they_o be_v do_v in_o christ_n no_o power_n to_o bring_v under_o devil_n no_o blessing_n no_o comfort_n yea_o that_o all_o follower_n be_v they_o never_o so_o wicked_a and_o flagitious_a have_v they_o only_a faith_n and_o no_o doubt_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o the_o forgetful_a liar_n confess_v afterward_o that_o we_o affirm_v that_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v without_o true_a and_o perfect_a doctrine_n nor_o without_o good_a work_v but_o what_o faith_n do_v you_o preach_v or_o teach_v say_v bristol_n not_o that_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n but_o a_o special_a faith_n or_o a_o vudoubted_a persuasion_n that_o he_o be_v predestinate_a how_o soever_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o bristol_n be_v dispose_v for_o to_o lie_v and_o rail_v they_o that_o either_o hear_v our_o sermon_n or_o read_v our_o book_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o do_v know_v that_o we_o teach_v none_o other_o faith_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v be_v iustify_v but_o even_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v only_o contain_v in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n the_o very_a first_o word_n whereof_o i_o believe_v teach_v not_o the_o implicit_a faith_n of_o the_o papist_n but_o a_o special_a and_o singular_a faith_n and_o trust_n that_o everye_o christian_a man_n must_v have_v in_o god_n the_o father_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v conceive_v bear_v dead_a rise_v again_o etc._n etc._n for_o we_o and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n conception_n nativirie_n suffer_v death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n be_v communicate_v to_o we_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o which_o we_o receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o thereby_o be_v make_v righteous_a we_o receive_v the_o reward_n of_o righteousness_n which_o be_v the_o resurrection_n unto_o glory_n and_o the_o life_n everlasting_a which_o be_v prepare_v for_o we_o before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v which_o faith_n no_o blasphemous_a heretic_n can_v have_v that_o deny_v any_o of_o these_o article_n what_o persuasion_n soever_o they_o have_v w_o c_o i'faith_o the_o papist_n have_v not_o which_o never_o put_v their_o trustin_a god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o their_o own_o work_v &c_n &c_n nor_o yet_o have_v any_o certainty_n of_o their_o salvation_n whereas_o all_o they_o that_o true_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v confound_v from_o which_o faith_n the_o papist_n be_v so_o far_o that_o they_o think_v it_o not_o convenient_a that_o the_o people_n shall_v know_v and_o rehearse_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n although_o now_o of_o late_a they_o have_v set_v forth_o english_a cathechisme_n as_o ape_n of_o the_o true_a church_n not_o that_o their_o disciple_n may_v have_v more_o knowledge_n see_v they_o hold_v that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n but_o that_o they_o see_v they_o can_v tho_o for_o shame_n they_o will_v conceal_v this_o knowledge_n from_o they_o and_o when_o they_o can_v hinder_v they_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n how_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v they_o teach_v they_o to_o believe_v they_o even_o with_o a_o historical_a faith_n which_o be_v none_o other_o then_o such_o as_o the_o devil_n believe_v namely_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v bear_v crucyfy_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 17._o demand_v he_o ask_v we_o whether_o we_o read_v not_o that_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v a_o ordinary_a power_n and_o office_n to_o cast_v out_o devil_n which_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o have_v not_o but_o the_o papist_n have_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v diverse_a gift_n of_o heal_a cast_v out_o of_o devil_n &_o work_v of_o miracle_n which_o be_v temporal_a and_o be_v long_o since_o cease_v to_o be_v ordinary_a and_o therefore_o we_o do_v in_o deed_n confess_v that_o we_o have_v no_o such_o ordinary_a power_n
neither_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v any_o such_o what_o juggle_a or_o counterfeit_v of_o miracle_n soever_o be_v among_o they_o their_o forgery_n have_v to_o often_o be_v try_v to_o their_o shame_n to_o conclude_v our_o church_n have_v christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o all_o grace_n &_o blessing_n whatsoever_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o same_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o elect_a and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n the_o 39_o motive_n be_v in_o part_n contain_v in_o the_o 48._o demand_n teach_v the_o narrow_a way_n and_o live_v after_o it_o who_o be_v bristol_n now_o follower_n of_o protestant_n why_o there_o be_v so_o many_o ●itheisti_fw-la in_o england_n england_n beware_v of_o destruction_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o god_n fulke_n wrath_n by_o work_n of_o our_o own_o or_o of_o other_o man_n the_o doctrine_n of_o pardon_n the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n give_v by_o sacrament_n exopere_fw-la operato_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n be_v doctrine_n that_o teach_v the_o broad_a way_n lead_v unto_o destruction_n while_o they_o bring_v man_n into_o security_n and_o confidence_n in_o vain_a help_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o papist_n and_o pope_n themselves_o of_o all_o other_o have_v be_v and_o be_v the_o most_o wicked_a the_o number_n of_o atheist_n that_o be_v in_o england_n be_v not_o make_v but_o discern_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o neither_o be_v there_o so_o many_o nor_o so_o impudent_a professor_n of_o atheism_n in_o england_n as_o there_o be_v in_o italy_n and_o even_o in_o rome_n itself_o where_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v condemn_v in_o general_a council_n for_o a_o atheist_n as_o john_n the_o 23._o in_o the_o council_n of_o consta●s_n where_o pope_n leo_n count_v the_o gospel_n for_o a_o fable_n of_o christ._n pope_n july_n will_v eat_v hog_n flesh_n in_o despite_n of_o god_n the_o sin_n i_o confess_v of_o england_n be_v great_a and_o such_o as_o call_v to_o god_n for_o vengeance_n without_o hearty_a repentance_n and_o the_o great_a sin_n be_v ingratitude_n in_o the_o multitude_n refuse_v sincere_o to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n and_o in_o other_o hypocrisy_n which_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v a_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n but_o deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o yet_o be_v there_o both_o in_o the_o state_n which_o bristol_n most_o traitorous_o do_v slander_v and_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n yea_o in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n more_o sincerity_n fidelity_n honesty_n charity_n humility_n chastity_n and_o godliness_n and_o less_o athesme_fw-fr infidelity_n cruelty_n pride_n ryote_n whoredom_n swear_v and_o forswear_v covetousness_n sacrilege_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n more_o i_o say_v of_o virtue_n and_o less_o of_o vice_n in_o england_n at_o this_o time_n then_o be_v or_o have_v be_v at_o any_o time_n with_o in_o those_o five_o hundred_o year_n in_o rome_n or_o italy_n so_o that_o if_o a_o book_n be_v make_v as_o bristol_n seem_v to_o threaten_v of_o the_o behaviour_n of_o the_o worst_a and_o most_o counterfeit_n protestant_n in_o england_n yet_o shall_v it_o never_o be_v find_v so_o vile_a and_o abominable_a as_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o most_o of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o set_v forth_o not_o by_o protestant_n in_o our_o day_n but_o by_o all_o popish_a story_n before_o we_o be_v bear_v the_o 40._o motive_n have_v no_o special_a demand_n answer_v to_o it_o bristol_n obedient_a subject_n in_o what_o church_n be_v christianity_n of_o all_o law_n which_o be_v saint_n augustine_n motive_n obedience_n of_o the_o catholic_n to_o their_o superior_n both_o ecclesiastieall_a and_o temporal_a protestant_n be_v malignour_n of_o high_a power_n fulke_n if_o this_o motive_n have_v be_v set_v forth_o before_o the_o rebellion_n in_o the_o north_n or_o if_o so_o many_o trayterouse_a practice_n from_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v open_o discover_v peradventure_o bristol_n may_v have_v move_v some_o mountain_n by_o it_o but_o now_o quis_fw-la tulerit_fw-la gracchum_fw-la de_fw-la seditiove_n loquent●m_fw-la who_o can_v abide_v the_o papist_n to_o brag_v of_o obedience_n yet_o both_o the_o civil_a law_n and_o the_o common_a law_n of_o england_n be_v make_v to_o serve_v popish_a religion_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v bristol_n god_n be_v thank_v they_o both_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o england_n but_o in_o all_o other_o realm_n and_o state_n that_o have_v embrace_v the_o gospel_n the_o civil_a and_o municipal_a law_n without_o any_o alteration_n of_o the_o state_n save_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n glory_n but_o protestant_n he_o say_v be_v maligner_n of_o the_o high_a power_n such_o as_o saint_n jude_n call_v contemner_n of_o lordship_n and_o blasphemer_n of_o majesty_n or_o else_o the_o papist_n be_v such_o in_o that_o blasphemouse_n bull_n for_o which_o felton_n be_v hang_v in_o which_o be_v so_o vile_a opprobrious_a and_o contumelious_a slander_n of_o our_o prince_n that_o for_o her_o honour_n and_o my_o duty_n sake_n i_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o name_v they_o he_o object_v unto_o we_o knox_n book_n against_o the_o regiment_n of_o woman_n which_o be_v but_o his_o private_a opinion_n and_o condemn_v of_o all_o our_o church_n and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n also_o he_o object_v the_o civil_a war_n in_o france_n in_o which_o the_o king_n themselves_o have_v always_o in_o public_a instrument_n discharge_v the_o protestant_n of_o all_o disloyalty_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v in_o take_v arm_n they_o do_v it_o in_o the_o service_n of_o they_o and_o of_o their_o realm_n as_o for_o the_o murder_a of_o great_a personage_n waste_v of_o city_n and_o country_n etc._n etc._n the_o world_n know_v whether_o party_n be_v chargeable_a with_o the_o crime_n and_o to_o seek_v no_o far_o prove_v of_o the_o traitorous_a and_o disobedient_a heart_n of_o all_o wicked_a and_o pernitiouse_a papistes●_n bristol_n himself_o confess_v in_o this_o motive_n that_o they_o be_v due_o discharge_v from_o subjection_n and_o the_o prince_n from_o dominion_n by_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o common_a paster_n of_o religion_n but_o where_o in_o the_o devil_n name_n have_v your_o sovereign_a pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o rome_n such_o authority_n from_o peter_n do_v peter_n discharge_v the_o subject_n of_o nero_n from_o subjection_n or_o nero_n from_o his_o government_n although_o he_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o do_v he_o not_o command_v all_o person_n to_o obey_v he_o 1._o pet_n 2._o 14._o &_o 17._o o_o traitorous_a hypocrite_n which_o have_v make_v all_o whole_a when_o you_o pray_v for_o the_o prince_n conversion_n so_o depose_v by_o your_o pope_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n defend_v our_o sovereign_n as_o well_o from_o your_o prayer_n as_o from_o your_o practice_n another_o argument_n of_o your_o obedience_n you_o show_v where_o you_o say_v that_o of_o catholic_n thorough_o discharge_v of_o their_o fealtic_n yet_o for_o common_a humanity_n for_o their_o accustom_a use_n for_o their_o continual_a &_o as_o it_o be_v natural_a institution_n the_o prince_n be_v better_a obey_v and_o screw_v then_o of_o the_o protestant_n which_o in_o heart_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o puritant_n note_v here_o that_o papist_n profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v subject_n of_o courtesy_n not_o of_o duty_n of_o custom_n not_o of_o conscience_n of_o natural_a institution_n not_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n send_v her_o majesty_n few_o such_o subject_n and_o servant_n the_o 41._o motive_n be_v the_o 19_o demand_n the_o church_n to_o which_o prince_n do_v homage_n bristol_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o church_n of_o which_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o king_n and_o queen_n fulke_n shall_v be_v the_o nurse_n thereof_o and_o as_o obedient_a child_n do_v homage_n thereto_o as_o to_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a to_o this_o church_n the_o old_a and_o first_o christian_v emperor_n constantius_n jovianus_n theodosius_n valentinianus_n etc._n etc._n submit_v themselves_o as_o obedient_a child_n to_o this_o church_n at_o this_o day_n many_o king_n and_o queen_n do_v homage_n and_o be_v nurse_n thereof_o as_o the_o prince_n of_o england_n scotland_n denmark_n suevon_n saxony_n but_o bristol_n object_v against_o we_o y_z t_z our_o prince_n be_v not_o teach_v obedience_n to_o the_o church_n but_o true_o seduce_v by_o the_o title_n of_o head_n and_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o title_n of_o headshippe_n and_o governaunce_n of_o particular_a church_n be_v none_o other_o but_o such_o as_o they_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o hold_v with_o their_o obedience_n unto_o the_o universal_a church_n yea_o their_o
be_v make_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v namely_o the_o truth_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o according_a to_o that_o which_o every_o fool_n will_v fond_o suppose_v or_o imagine_v the_o 44._o motive_n be_v the_o 49._o demand_n the_o church_n that_o all_o chrsste_n enemy_n fight_v against_o england_n bristol_n join_v with_o christ_n enemy_n against_o christendom_n what_o religion_n the_o jowes_n impunge_n as_o the_o religion_n of_o christ._n christ_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o convert_n of_o emperor_n and_o power_n from_o their_o idol_n to_o serve_v his_o servant_n the_o church_n be_v everlasting_a and_o visible_a saint_n augustine_n motive_n emperor_n turn_v from_o their_o idol_n and_o pray_v at_o peter_n sepulchre_n and_o the_o christianity_n of_o humane_a law_n saint_n augustine_n of_o our_o religion_n protestant_n be_v of_o many_o old_a heresy_n the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o persecute_v by_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n fulke_n the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a antiquity_n that_o she_o have_v then_o any_o show_n in_o the_o world_n although_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v then_o work_v and_o even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o heathen_n turk_n and_o jew_n do_v no_o more_o hate_v the_o popish_a church_n then_o they_o do_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o england_n the_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n be_v at_o this_o day_n maintain_v by_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n which_o be_v of_o our_o religion_n aswell_o as_o by_o the_o papist_n that_o there_o be_v no_o public_a aid_n send_v against_o the_o turk_n out_o of_o england_n it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o allowance_n of_o turkish_a religion_n but_o because_o the_o state_n see_v it_o not_o necessary_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o public_a aid_n send_v a_o hundred_o year_n be_v over_o the_o revolt_n from_o papistry_n and_o yet_o even_o in_o the_o queen_n majesty_n reign_n there_o have_v go_v aid_n out_o of_o england_n against_o soliman_n which_o die_v at_o the_o siege_n of_o segesto_n where_o diverse_a noble_a gentleman_n of_o england_n goinge_v on_o their_o own_o charge_n as_o bizia_n testify_v wan_a more_o true_a glory_n than_o they_o that_o 2._o or_o 3._o hundred_o year_n before_o upon_o a_o superstitious_a vow_n be_v sign_v with_o the_o cross_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o saracen_n for_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o earthly_a jerusalem_n how_o often_o shall_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n be_v not_o convert_v from_o idolatry_n to_o christianity_n by_o the_o popish_a church_n but_o the_o late_a christian_a emperor_n by_o she_o have_v be_v pervert_v from_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n unto_o idolatry_n that_o the_o emperor_n be_v convert_v from_o idolatry_n do_v pray_v at_o peter_n the_o fisherman_n sepulchre_n as_o augustine_n say_v it_o show_v the_o virtue_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o gospel_n of_o christ_n that_o have_v make_v so_o great_a alteration_n in_o they_o but_o nothing_o at_o all_o prove_v the_o authority_n or_o any_o error_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o augustine_n say_v not_o that_o they_o pray_v unto_o peter_n but_o at_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o peter_n mean_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o place_n that_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o burial_n of_o peter_n the_o law_n that_o those_o emperor_n make_v against_o idolater_n may_v well_o serve_v against_o the_o papist_n with_o c_o be_v as_o gross_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n as_o the_o gentill_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v final_o it_o be_v not_o y_z e_z popish_a church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o suppress_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arrian_n sabellian_o nestorian_n etc._n etc._n but_o jovinian_a do_v let_v out_o of_o hell_n priest_n and_o nun_n marriage_n which_o gate_n not_o the_o church_n of_o protestant_n but_o our_o church_n say_v bristol_n have_v stop_v the_o church_n that_o strive_v against_o jovinian_a be_v nether_a for_o marriage_n of_o priest_n of_o who_o many_o thousand_o be_v marry_v in_o that_o time_n yea_o and_o a_o thowsande_n year_n after_o nor_o yet_o for_o marriage_n of_o such_o as_o have_v vow_v virginity_n and_o can_v not_o contain_v when_o both_o epiphanius_n the_o hatchet_n of_o heresy_n and_o hierome_n that_o great_a adversary_n of_o jovinian_a agree_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o marye_n epiph._n count_n apostolicoshaer_fw-mi 61._o hierom_n ad_fw-la demetriadem_fw-la nether_a be_v epiphanius_n philaster_n and_o augustine_n which_o disallow_v the_o opinion_n of_o aerius_n concern_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a member_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o this_o one_o error_n which_o they_o hold_v see_v they_o hold_v the_o principal_a substance_n of_o religion_n against_o the_o papist_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o bristol_n say_v in_o the_o demand_n we_o count_v turk_n jew_n and_o very_a atheist_n for_o our_o friend_n and_o all_o that_o be_v not_o papist_n it_o be_v a_o most_o detestable_a slander_n the_o anabaptiste_n burn_v in_o smithfield_n be_v no_o papist_n the_o blasphemer_n of_o christ_n late_o burn_v at_o norwiche_n be_v no_o papist_n who_o sharp_a execution_n show_v that_o heretic_n blasphemer_n and_o atheist_n when_o they_o be_v discover_v find_v no_o friendship_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o such_o as_o they_o deserve_v final_o the_o eastern_a church_n which_o of_o long_a time_n have_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o romish_a communion_n have_v as_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o turk_n heathen_a and_o jew_n as_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v yet_o will_v not_o the_o papist_n allow_v it_o for_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o 45._o motive_n contain_v the_o 31._o 32._o &_o 33._o &_o 40._o demand_n ever_o visible_a and_o catholic_a vniversalitic_a antiquity_n consent_n bristol_n protestant_n be_v never_o before_o this_o tyme._n they_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o father_n hus_n be_v not_o a_o protestant_n wicklefe_v be_v not_o a_o protestant_n wicklefe_v condemn_v by_o melancthon_n prophecy_n for_o our_o religion_n no_o scripture_n against_o the_o catholic_n but_o all_o for_o they_o here_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o old_a popish_a brag_n of_o universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_n which_o be_v as_o easy_o deny_v fulke_n as_o it_o be_v always_o allege_v without_o proof_n save_v that_o in_o the_o demand_n they_o be_v sunder_v as_o though_o every_o one_o of_o they_o without_o the_o other_o two_o be_v a_o sufficient_a trial_n of_o truth_n which_o nether_a vincentius_n nor_o optatus_n nor_o augustine_n nor_o any_o that_o use_v this_o argument_n do_v ever_o mean_a but_o that_o be_v truth_n which_o be_v most_o ancient_a have_v at_o all_o time_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n by_o general_a consent_n be_v receyve_v but_o this_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v of_o any_o one_o error_n of_o popery_n for_o if_o any_o of_o these_o three_o be_v omit_v the_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o prove_v truth_n all_o nation_n by_o general_a consent_n embrace_v idolatry_n yet_o be_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n which_o be_v know_v only_o in_o jurye_n the_o more_o ancient_a the_o worship_n of_o jupiter_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n show_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o more_o universal_o receyve_v but_o not_o of_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n as_o for_o general_a counsel_n which_o in_o the_o demand_n of_o consent_n he_o say_v to_o be_v all_o against_o the_o protestant_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v one_o approve_v general_a council_n that_o be_v hold_v within_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o decree_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o we_o believe_v in_o any_o point_n but_o confess_v that_o in_o many_o age_n some_o there_o have_v be_v in_o some_o point_n of_o our_o opinion_n yet_o he_o say_v we_o can_v show_v no_o lineal_a succession_n but_o leap_v from_o luther_n to_o christ_n without_o any_o record_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o all_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v no_o monument_n of_o such_o church_n nether_a in_o leaf_n or_o line_n of_o service_n book_n as_o one_o that_o love_v antiquity_n well_o i_o will_v fain_o see_v what_o leave_v the_o papist_n can_v show_v of_o their_o service_n book_n to_o prove_v a_o lineal_a desc●nt_n from_o christ_n to_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 13_o when_o bristol_n swear_v perdie_o to_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n with_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o which_o be_v in_o luther_n time_n some_o of_o their_o service_n be_v make_v by_o thomas_n aquinas_n some_o by_o fulbertus_n some_o take_v out_o of_o beda_n some_o out_o of_o gregory_n some_o out_o of_o augustine_n some_o out_o of_o hieronyme_n some_o out_o of_o john_n chrysostom_n and_o of_o ambrose_n and_o the_o elder_a i_o think_v not_o of_o origen_n which_o argue_v nether_a antiquity_n nor_o universality_n to_o stand_v with_o the_o popish_a service_n as_o for_o
because_o they_o be_v find_v in_o some_o holy_a man_n as_o in_o s._n athanasius_n epiphanius_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n although_o these_o opinion_n be_v but_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o so_o many_o article_n of_o religion_n in_o which_o we_o dissent_v from_o the_o papist_n which_o if_o they_o can_v be_v find_v in_o heretic_n we_o shall_v soon_o hear_v of_o they_o yet_o what_o logic_n be_v in_o this_o conclusion_n of_o bristol_n you_o shall_v see_v by_o example_n of_o the_o like_a and_o even_o of_o the_o same_o heretic_n aerius_n as_o augustine_n report_v out_o of_o philastre_n do_v also_o receive_v into_o his_o fellowship_n none_o but_o such_o as_o weet_v continent_n and_o have_v so_o renounce_v the_o world_n that_o they_o possess_v nothing_o in_o common_a likewise_o they_o abstayn_v from_o flesh_n the_o very_a same_o do_v bernarde_n report_n of_o the_o heretic_n call_v apostolic_a that_o they_o rereverenced_a marriage_n and_o abstayn_v from_o all_o flesh_n and_o whitemeate_n in_o canti_fw-la ser._n 66._o this_o divelishe_a seed_n prophesy_v before_o to_o be_v the_o note_n of_o antichristian_a hypocrite_n grow_v in_o many_o heretic_n before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o not_o these_o only_a but_o many_o other_o also_o worship_v of_o image_n in_o carpocratian_o ep._n 1._o lib._n 1._o t._n 2._o prefat_n contr_n gnostic_n 27._o 29._o the_o superstitious_a estimation_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o valentinian_o epiph._n ho._n 31._o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o blood_n in_o marcus_n and_o the_o marcosian_o ire●aeus_n lib._n 1_o cap._n 9_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o montanistes_n tert._n de_fw-fr monon_n &_o de_fw-fr anima_fw-la etc._n etc._n invocation_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o caianite_n and_o many_o other_o popish_a plant_n be_v first_o sow_v by_o the_o devil_n in_o elder_a heretic_n and_o yet_o be_v this_o no_o good_a argument_n to_o confute_v these_o opinion_n or_o error_n because_o they_o be_v find_v in_o heretic_n except_o they_o be_v find_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n all_o be_v no_o heresy_n whatsoever_o a_o heretic_n have_v affirm_v for_o there_o be_v never_o heretic_n but_o affirm_v much_o truth_n neither_o be_v all_o truth_n that_o be_v affirm_v by_o every_o saint_n and_o holy_a man_n for_o not_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n but_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v affirm_v some_o untruth_n only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ought_v to_o have_v this_o pre-eminence_n as_o augustine_n say_v that_o it_o may_v judge_v of_o all_o say_n and_o writing_n itself_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o because_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o can_v not_o err_v or_o be_v deceive_v cont._n crescon_n gram_n lib._n 2._o cap._n ●●_o but_o bristol_n have_v scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o which_o deny_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v find_v among_o the_o arrian_n &_o anabaptist_n can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v bind_v in_o bundell_n with_o they_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n mat._n 13._o in_o deed_n he_o that_o be_v a_o arrian_n or_o anabaptist_n shall_v not_o escape_v for_o deny_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v the_o reaper_n be_v not_o so_o unskilful_a but_o that_o they_o can_v discern_v true_a christian_n deny_v the_o abuse_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o admit_v from_o blasphemous_a heretic_n among_o a_o great_a number_n of_o falsehoode_n affirm_v some_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v a_o sore_a matter_n that_o he_o say_v the_o very_o worst_a sort_n of_o heretic_n of_o this_o time_n as_o the_o anabaptiste_n trinitaries_n yea_o the_o very_a epicure_n and_o atheist_n be_v first_o protestant_n you_o such_o they_o be_v and_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v still_o he_o have_v speak_v more_o true_o if_o he_o have_v say_v they_o be_v first_o papist_n but_o what_o heretic_n and_o atheist_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v it_o be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o our_o cause_n see_v all_o hypocrite_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v true_a christian_n that_o only_a papist_n be_v trouble_v in_o our_o country_n and_o all_o other_o sect_n tolerate_v and_o maintain_v the_o public_a execution_n and_o punishment_n of_o anabaptiste_n and_o other_o blasphemous_a sect_n as_o the_o family_n of_o love_n etc._n etc._n do_v plain_o prove_v to_o be_v false_a and_o bristol_n to_o be_v a_o shameless_a slanderer_n the_o 47._o motive_n be_v the_o 50._o demand_n sure_o to_o continue_v the_o church_n be_v everlasting_a and_o visible_a bristol_n protestant_n do_v decay_n and_o shall_v come_v to_o nothing_o the_o church_n continuance_n s._n augustine_n motive_n england_n beware_v destruction_n luther_n be_v a_o false_a prophet_n i_o need_v not_o to_o show_v how_o often_o and_o how_o vain_o bristol_n repeat_v one_o thing_n to_o make_v a_o great_a number_n of_o motive_n the_o everlasting_a continuance_n of_o the_o true_a church_n have_v be_v seven_o time_n at_o least_o before_o allege_v but_o neither_o be_v it_o prove_v that_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v that_o true_a church_n nor_o yet_o that_o any_o sect_n or_o company_n which_o shall_v continewe_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ._n for_o although_o antichrist_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v more_o and_o more_o consume_v with_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o lord_n mouth_n which_o be_v his_o holy_a word_n yet_o shall_v he_o not_o be_v altogether_o abolish_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v faith_n shall_v be_v very_o scant_o and_o hard_o to_o be_v find_v and_o iniquity_n shall_v have_v the_o upper_a hand_n therefore_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a church_n of_o malignant_a hypocryte_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v true_a therefore_o that_o christ_n church_n be_v sure_a to_o continewe_v but_o not_o whatsoever_o sect_n shall_v continue_v be_v thereby_o prove_v to_o be_v christ_n true_a church_n how_o vain_a his_o brag_n be_v that_o protestant_n do_v decay_n and_o shall_v come_v to_o nothing_o by_o their_o daily_a increase_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n god_n be_v thank_v may_v be_v see_v to_o all_o man_n likewise_o how_o true_a it_o be_v which_o he_o affirm_v that_o papist_n do_v increase_v and_o to_o such_o number_n even_o in_o england_n that_o there_o be_v more_o papist_n now_o then_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v first_o preach_v notwithstanding_o so_o many_o year_n preach_v of_o we_o and_o large_a silence_n of_o they_o who_o live_v in_o england_n can_v be_v ignorant_a i_o confess_v there_o be_v too_o many_o obstinate_a papist_n in_o england_n who_o none_o of_o bristowe_v motive_n have_v either_o move_v unto_o popery_n or_o confirm_v therein_o but_o only_o great_a toleration_n and_o lenity_n which_o be_v use_v in_o these_o time_n but_o if_o such_o severity_n be_v use_v now_o as_o in_o time_n past_a the_o pope_n shall_v not_o have_v many_o confessor_n in_o england_n to_o glory_n of_o and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n what_o one_o of_o these_o papist_n dare_v profess_v what_o he_o think_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n because_o the_o law_n be_v somewhat_o sharp_a in_o that_o point_n if_o the_o like_a law_n be_v of_o hear_v mass_n we_o shall_v have_v as_o few_o suffer_v for_o mass_n as_o for_o the_o supremacy_n but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o motive_n s._n augustine_n do_v well_o to_o send_v honoratus_n the_o manichee_n to_o follow_v that_o way_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n which_o from_o christ_n himself_o by_o the_o apopostle_n be_v descend_v unto_o we_o and_o from_o hence_o to_o posterity_n shall_v descend_v de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a cap._n 8._o but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o way_n of_o all_o popish_a doctrine_n which_o never_o come_v from_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n nor_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n and_o if_o the_o tradition_n be_v uncerteyne_a how_o shall_v we_o know_v what_o come_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o that_o which_o we_o find_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o his_o apostle_n but_o the_o same_o augustine_n say_v bristol_n bid_v the_o simple_a donatist_n to_o number_v the_o priest_n even_o from_o the_o very_a seat_n of_o peter_n and_o in_o that_o order_n of_o father_n see_v who_o to_o who_o succeed_v that_o same_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o overcome_v p._n s._n contra_fw-la donatistas_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o vine_n whereof_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n be_v but_o a_o grow_a branch_n for_o a_o little_a before_o he_o say_v scitis_fw-la catholica_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o quid_fw-la sit_fw-la precisum_fw-la a_o vite_fw-la you_o know_v what_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v and_o what_o be_v that_o which_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o vine_n but_o if_o
bristol_n shall_v urge_v the_o seat_n of_o peter_n to_o be_v call_v of_o augustine_n the_o rock_n augustine_n in_o his_o retractation_n confess_v that_o he_o oftentimes_o have_v expound_v the_o rock_n to_o be_v christ_n and_o so_o will_v not_o abide_v by_o that_o former_a exposition_n retract_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 21._o neither_o do_v augustine_n ever_o mean_v that_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n at_o rome_n be_v a_o rock_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o none_o that_o ever_o shall_v sit_v there_o can_v err_v for_o he_o himself_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n withstand_v y_o e_o bishop_n of_o rome_n claim_v jurisdiction_n in_o africa_n by_o colour_n of_o a_o counterfeit_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a conc._n carth._n 6._o cap._n 4._o council_n ●●phr_fw-ge ep._n ad_fw-la celest._n what_o shall_v i_o here_o repeat_v pope_n honorius_n condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n not_o only_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o 6._o but_o also_o in_o the_o idolatrous_a council_n of_o nice_a the_o 2._o and_o john_n the_o 23._o condemn_v for_o a_o atheist_n in_o the_o council_n of_o gonstance_n if_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v not_o manifest_o against_o that_o seat_n yea_o and_o so_o many_o other_o bishop_n thereof_o who_o they_o themselves_o confess_v to_o be_v damn_v in_o hell_n for_o their_o wicked_a life_n we_o need_v not_o great_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n yea_o say_v bristol_n it_o have_v be_v impugn_a ten_o thousand_o time_n more_o than_o any_o other_o but_o all_o in_o vain_a frustra_fw-la circumlatrantibus_fw-la haereticis_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n in_o vain_a be_v the_o bark_n of_o heretic_n all_o about_o it_o de_fw-fr util_a cred_a cap._n 17._o but_o the_o place_n of_o augustine_n which_o he_o cit_v be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o peter_n seat_n round_o about_o the_o which_o the_o heretic_n have_v bark_v in_o vain_a for_o even_o in_o that_o seat_n but_o yet_o out_o of_o the_o church_n liberius_n have_v bark_v arrianisme_n marcellus_n gentilism_n and_o after_o his_o time_n honorius_n bark_v with_o the_o monothelit_n as_o his_o epistle_n which_o remain_v after_o his_o death_n declare_v vigilius_n also_o by_o his_o epistle_n be_v prove_v to_o bark_v euty_n chianisme_n liberat._n cap._n 22._o john_n the_o 23._o bark_v with_o the_o sadducee_n against_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a cont_n constanti_fw-la sect_n 11._o the_o see_v of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v no_o more_o the_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v than_o the_o see_v of_o canterbury_n or_o london_n but_o say_v bristol_n who_o can_v say_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o a_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n or_o london_n very_o no_o more_o can_v any_o man_n say_v that_o there_o shall_v always_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o whosoever_o say_v that_o there_o have_v be_v always_o since_o peter_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v lie_v most_o impudent_o for_o the_o see_v have_v often_o ly●n_o void_a not_o only_o for_o a_o short●_n time_n while_o a_o new_a bishop_n may_v be_v choose_v but_o many_o year_n together_o again_o the_o see_v have_v be_v translate_v from_o rome_n to_o auinion_n and_o the_o pope_n court_n keep_v there_o for_o threescore_o year_n together_o by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a both_o that_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n ha●h_v not_o be_v the_o perpetual_a see_v of_o peter_n successor_n and_o that_o peter_n successor_n have_v err_v in_o remove_v their_o court_n from_o that_o city_n which_o peter_n choose_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o world_n and_o constantine_n give_v as_o they_o say_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o may_v have_v forbear_v so_o great_a a_o gift_n like_a as_o peter_n also_o may_v have_v spare_v his_o travel_n in_o remove_v his_o see_v from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n if_o they_o can_v have_v foresee_v that_o the_o pope_n court_n may_v have_v be_v keep_v as_o well_o in_o france_n as_o in_o italy_n at_o auinion_n as_o at_o rome_n but_o luther_n be_v charge_v to_o be_v a_o false_a prophet_n for_o that_o he_o say_v in_o his_o book_n against_o king_n henry_n that_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o have_v his_o doctrine_n from_o heaven_n that_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v stand_v and_o the_o pope_n shall_v fall_v that_o god_n shall_v see_v whether_o first_o be_v weary_a and_o fail_v the_o pope_n or_o luther_n the_o note_n of_o a_o false_a prophet_n in_o deu._n 18_o be_v to_o geve_v a_o sign_n which_o do_v not_o follow_v &_o so_o have_v luther_n do_v say_v bristol_n for_o zwinglius_fw-la have_v overcome_v luther_n &_o caluine_n zwinglius_fw-la and_o the_o puritan_n the_o protestant_n in_o england_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o luther_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o foreshow_v thing_n to_o come_v by_o any_o special_a revelation_n but_o only_o affirm_v that_o his_o doctrine_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v from_o heaven_n &_o shall_v continewe_v whereas_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o devil_n shall_v come_v to_o naught_o and_o in_o this_o victory_n if_o he_o please_v so_o to_o term_v it_o have_v not_o the_o pope_n lose_v by_o prevayl_v of_o zwinglius_fw-la and_o caluine_n and_o be_v that_o opinion_n of_o luther_n which_o they_o have_v impugn_a i_o mean_v of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n luther_n or_o the_o pope_n but_o whereas_o y_o e_o slanderous_a hypocrite_n will_v make_v man_n think_v that_o caluine_n have_v oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o helvetia_n with_o to_o they_o of_o sabaudia_n be_v public_o set_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n do_v open_o testify_v the_o contrary_n also_o the_o contention_n of_o those_o who_o he_o call_v puritan_n in_o england_n be_v not_o so_o great_a nor_o about_o so_o great_a matter_n that_o any_o such_o division_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v which_o may_v cause_v desolation_n of_o the_o kingdom_n add_v hereunto_o that_o bristol_n say_v in_o the_o 40._o motive_n that_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o in_o heart_n puritan_n whereby_o he_o confess_v against_o himself_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o deadly_a contention_n between_o they_o that_o in_o heart_n be_v all_o one_o the_o 48._o motive_n how_o to_o make_v plain_a demonstration_n that_o the_o heretic_n have_v no_o evidence_n &_o that_o we_o have_v all_o who_o be_v wrester_n of_o the_o scripture_n bristol_n the_o inconstancy_n of_o the_o protestant_n the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o church_n this_o wise_a demonstration_n be_v a_o plain_a declaration_n that_o fulke_n he_o which_o make_v it_o know_v not_o what_o a_o demonstration_n mean_v but_o such_o as_o it_o be_v let_v we_o see_v what_o be_v in_o it_o first_o he_o will_v have_v it_o propon_v by_o a_o catholic_a to_o his_o friend_n that_o be_v in_o heretic_n to_o be_v consider_v see_v all_o these_o motive_n begin_v with_o holy_a scripture_n approve_a tradition_n etc._n etc._n be_v for_o they_o &_o agai_fw-mi st_o we_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o we_o cry_v so_o shameless_o &_o deceitful_o the_o gospel_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o touchstone_n of_o god_n book_n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o false_a suppose_a &_o shameful_a beg_n of_o the_o principle_n he_o will_v prove_v that_o all_o these_o evidence_n be_v for_o they_o and_o so_o must_v the_o heretic_n that_o you_o will_v deal_v withal_o be_v make_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o confess_v yea_o sir_n but_o how_o will_v you_o drive_v he_o to_o this_o confession_n forsooth_o say_v bristol_n they_o all_o confess_v it_o many_o way_n indirect_o first_o in_o that_o they_o use_v not_o the_o same_o evidence_n themselves_o in_o their_o declaration_n second_o in_o that_o they_o admit_v no_o evidence_n but_o only_a scripture_n to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v they_o use_v as_o much_o of_o this_o evidence_n as_o be_v good_a &_o agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o second_o i_o say_v that_o if_o only_a scripture_n be_v on_o our_o side_n it_o be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n against_o the_o scripture_n and_o again_o if_o only_a scripture_n be_v on_o ourside_n than_o all_o the_o motive_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n for_o scripture_n be_v one_o of_o they_o the_o 8._o in_o the_o motive_n the_o first_o in_o the_o demand_n but_o the_o papist_n must_v make_v his_o friend_n say_v as_o much_o direct_o or_o else_o say_v express_o to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o whether_o he_o will_v be_v try_v by_o they_o as_o a_o friend_n to_o the_o presone_n though_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o error_n of_o such_o papist_n as_o be_v curarable_a i_o have_v say_v express_o and_o
particular_o to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o shewe_a whether_o it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o it_o be_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o we_o and_o not_o to_o they_o although_o bristol_n say_v that_o this_o way_n we_o know_v full_a well_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o victory_n fly_v therefore_o evermore_o to_o our_o weak_a &_o false_a castle_n of_o only_a scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n only_o be_v our_o castle_n we_o do_v glad_o admit_v but_o that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o most_o strong_a true_a &_o impugnable_a castle_n none_o but_o a_o blasphemous_a heretic_n will_v deny_v but_o you_o must_v say_v bristol_n still_o labour_n to_o get_v they_o &_o if_o you_o can_v with_o their_o consent_n out_o of_o the_o castle_n into_o the_o plain_a field_n aforesaid_a to_o make_v they_o grant_v express_o that_o there_o in_o your_o hand_n they_o can_v not_o stand_v nay_o bristol_n you_o must_v beat_v we_o from_o our_o castle_n if_o you_o can_v for_o we_o will_v never_o consent_v to_o go_v out_o of_o it_o for_o defence_n except_o it_o be_v to_o offer_v you_o the_o advantage_n not_o in_o the_o plain_a field_n as_o you_o call_v it_o but_o among_o your_o petty_a pile_n and_o small_a hold_n and_o so_o we_o have_v do_v often_o so_o do_v that_o reverend_a father_n the_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n in_o that_o noble_a challenge_n wherein_o you_o be_v shameful_o foil_v in_o your_o own_o ground_n and_o many_o of_o your_o fort_n beat_v about_o your_o ear_n but_o you_o do_v not_o well_o to_o teach_v your_o scholar_n to_o seek_v a_o gentle_a adversary_n to_o fight_v withal_o which_o must_v first_o of_o all_o be_v willing_a to_o lay_v down_o his_o sword_n and_o shield_n and_o then_o you_o be_v good_a enough_o for_o he_o with_o your_o manly_a motive_n with_o which_o when_o you_o have_v treandle_v he_o about_o like_o a_o tennis_n ball_n you_o send_v he_o back_o again_o to_o his_o castle_n of_o only_a scripture_n to_o see_v whether_o they_o will_v bear_v he_o out_o in_o his_o opinion_n for_o example_n be_v not_o this_o scripture_n manifest_a enough_o on_o your_o side_n and_o against_o we_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n mat._n 26._o very_o even_o as_o plain_a as_o this_o they_o do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n they_o all_o drink_v of_o the_o rock_n that_o follow_v they_o &_o you_o e_o rock_n be_v christ._n 1._o cor._n 10._o they_o be_v both_o one_o manner_n of_o speak_v and_o both_o of_o one_o matter_n therefore_o they_o have_v both_o one_o meaning_n the_o second_o example_n be_v by_o work_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v &_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o jac._n 2._o and_o this_o be_v also_o scripture_n know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n g●lat_n 2._o and_o again_o by_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v the_o late_a be_v in_o manner_n of_o speak_v contrary_a to_o the_o former_a text_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o these_o two_o apostle_n speak_v not_o both_o of_o one_o kind_n of_o faith_n or_o justification_n but_o that_o james_n speak_v of_o a_o dead_a faith_n as_o his_o word_n be_v plain_a vers._n 17._o and_o of_o justification_n before_o man_n paul_n of_o a_o live_a faith_n and_o of_o justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n the_o three_o example_n be_v out_o of_o james_n 5._o where_o i_o must_v first_o note_n that_o bristol_n in_o translation_n do_v manifest_o corrupt_a &_o falsify_v the_o scripture_n the_o latin_a be_v infirmatur_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o vobis_fw-la if_o any_o amongst_o you_o be_v dangerous_o sick_a let_v he_o send_v for_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o to_o pray_v over_o he_o aneal_v he_o with_o oil_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n first_o bristol_n add_v this_o word_n dangerous_o of_o his_o own_o head_n which_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o greek_a nor_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n to_o draw_v the_o text_n of_o james_n violent_o to_o their_o popish_a grease_n which_o they_o use_v only_o when_o a_o man_n be_v desperate_o sick_a and_o past_a hope_n of_o recovery_n in_o thei●_n judgement_n whereas_o james_n speak_v general_o of_o any_o kind_n of_o sickness_n wherewith_o any_o of_o the_o faithful_a be_v molest_v second_o bristol_n leave_v out_o the_o word_n follow_v which_o be_v these_o and_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n shall_v save_v the_o sick_a person_n and_o the_o lord_n shall_v restore_v he_o or_o raise_v he_o up_o the_o latin_a be_v alle●iabit_n shall_v ease_v he_o which_o word_n declare_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o perpetual_a sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o a_o ceremony_n use_v by_o they_o that_o have_v a_o special_a gift_n of_o heal_v the_o sick_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o ceremony_n must_v needs_o cease_v with_o the_o gift_n except_o it_o be_v among_o ape_n that_o practise_v outward_a gesture_n and_o action_n without_o effect_n the_o other_o two_o example_n out_o of_o the_o 2._o of_o maccabee_n the_o one_o of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a the_o other_o of_o jeremie_n pray_v for_o the_o people_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o castle_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o with_o other_o error_n in_o the_o same_o book_n i_o omit_v they_o the_o last_o example_n be_v out_o of_o genesis_n 48._o the_o say_n of_o jacob_n the_o patriarch_n of_o joseph_n two_o child_n god_n who_o have_v feed_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n even_o to_o this_o day_n the_o angel_n who_o have_v deliver_v i_o out_o of_o all_o adversity_n bless_v these_o child_n which_o be_v say_v bristol_n as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v god_n and_o our_o lady_n bless_v they_o nay_o rather_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n bless_v they_o for_o what_o other_o angel_n but_o christ_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o great_a council_n be_v the_o deliverer_n of_o jacob_n which_o when_o he_o wrestle_v with_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n and_o mystery_n gen._n 32._o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o call_v god_n even_o the_o same_o angel_n which_o lead_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n through_o the_o wilderness_n who_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 10._o call_v christ_n who_o be_v not_o a_o angel_n by_o nature_n but_o by_o office_n &_o in_o that_o as_o the_o mediator_n he_o be_v send_v to_o deliver_v the_o people_n before_o he_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v understand_v the_o angel_n of_o who_o jacob_n speak_v for_o soon_o private_a angel_n appoint_v of_o god_n to_o protect_v he_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v now_o god_n &_o our_o lady_n bless_v they_o for_o that_o god_n use_v the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n to_o defend_v &_o prosper_v his_o servant_n but_o not_o the_o ministry_n of_o saint_n in_o heaven_n for_o any_o such_o purpose_n that_o we_o can_v learn_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n jacob_n may_v therefore_o pray_v you_o t_o god_n will_v send_v his_o angel_n to_o protect_v those_o child_n even_o as_o he_o have_v do_v for_o he_o as_o for_o that_o vain_a brag_n that_o all_o scripture_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o genesis_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v for_o they_o &_o against_o we_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o false_a alarm_n as_o though_o he_o will_v on_o all_o side_n assalt_n our_o castle_n of_o only_a scripture_n whereas_o he_o purpose_v nothing_o less_o but_o this_o can_v not_o be_v bear_v that_o he_o say_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a against_o we_o that_o we_o can_v not_o answer_v they_o but_o by_o pluck_v the_o pen_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n that_o write_v they_o meaning_n that_o we_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o such_o book_n as_o be_v not_o canonical_a the_o maccabee_n especial_o but_o this_o he_o say_v can_v not_o be_v for_o either_o they_o be_v prove_v mu●ncibly_o to_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n indight_v or_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v such_o as_o you_o may_v remember_v the_o common_a say_n of_o s._n augustine_n ego_fw-la euangelio_fw-la non_fw-la crederem_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n itself_o unless_o the_o catholic_a church_n authority_n do_v compel_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v to_o this_o impudent_a blasphemer_n that_o allow_v none_o other_o trial_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n because_o augustine_n suppose_v that_o he_o be_v a_o heathen_a again_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n except_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n with_o other_o thing_n do_v move_v he_o his_o word_n be_v commoveret_fw-la which_o bristol_n not_o so_o ignoraunt_o as_o
divinity_n hosius_n say_v that_o this_o commandment_n of_o christ_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o be_v understand_v do_v appertain_v unto_o lay_v man_n contrary_a to_o their_o church_n determination_n be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o for_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v it_o be_v false_a there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a faith_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n in_o all_o time_n from_o which_o we_o will_v never_o depart_v although_o we_o have_v depart_v from_o some_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o some_o father_n which_o because_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o hear_v whereof_o faith_n come_v they_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o faith_n final_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o only_a witness_n of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n it_o be_v untrue_a for_o although_o he_o shall_v mean_v not_o the_o popish_a synagogue_n butthe_v true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o the_o only_a witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o even_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n be_v witness_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o many_o sect_n of_o heresy_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n beside_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a witness_n of_o all_o which_o speak_v so_o evident_o in_o allthe_n canonical_a scripture_n that_o if_o all_o man_n on_o earth_n shall_v refuse_v to_o give_v credit_n unto_o they_o yet_o his_o majesty_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o get_v credit_n unto_o they_o especial_o with_o all_o those_o who_o he_o teach_v inward_o in_o heart_n as_o he_o speak_v sensible_o to_o their_o ear_n the_o last_o argument_n be_v that_o in_o place_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o goodness_n which_o they_o have_v remove_v devise_v a_o new_a gospel_n of_o their_o foresay_a only_a vain_a faith_n which_o teach_v all_o sin_n &_o all_o heresy_n to_o presume_v of_o salvation_n what_o can_v be_v more_o impudent_a or_o false_a than_o this_o slander_n see_v god_n and_o the_o world_n know_v that_o we_o teach_v none_o other_o faith_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o work_v by_o love_n and_o promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n to_o none_o but_o such_o as_o earnest_o repent_v and_o be_v willing_a to_o remove_v all_o heresy_n and_o to_o embrace_v all_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o goodness_n god_n be_v praise_v a_o discovery_n of_o the_o dangerous_a rock_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n late_o commend_v by_o nicholas_n sanders_n d._n in_o divinity_n at_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v in_o peril_n of_o shipwreck_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n by_o w._n fulke_o d._n in_o divinity_n the_o eternal_a rock_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n christ_n be_v the_o rock_n a_o other_o foundation_n no_o saunder_n man_n be_v able_a to_o put_v 1._o cor._n 3._o &_o 10._o the_o temporal_a rock_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n thou_o be_v peter_n &_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n mat._n 16._o spawl_v speak_v manifest_o 1._o cor._n 3._o of_o building_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o christ_n fulke_n mat._n 16._o speak_v of_o a_o eternal_a rock_n against_o the_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v therefore_o your_o distinction_n of_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a universal_a and_o militant_a which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o your_o rot_a rock_n be_v a_o impudent_a and_o blasphemous_a falsehood_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o your_o temporal_a rock_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o contend_v when_o your_o rock_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o heap_n of_o sand_n and_o dung_n whereon_o your_o popish_a church_n be_v build_v to_o the_o right_n worshipful_a m._n doctor_n parker_n bear_v the_o saunder_n name_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o to_o all_o other_o protestant_n in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n nicolas_n saunder_n wish_v perfect_a faith_n and_o charity_n in_o our_o lord_n declare_v in_o this_o preface_n that_o the_o catholic_n who_o they_o call_v papist_n do_v pass_v the_o protestant_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o sign_n or_o mark_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n concern_v the_o omission_n of_o title_n accustom_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n for_o which_o you_o excuse_v yourself_o i_o think_v m._n d._n parker_n while_o he_o live_v do_v not_o much_o esteem_v they_o give_v to_o he_o by_o any_o man_n and_o least_o of_o all_o look_v to_o receyve_v they_o at_o such_o man_n hand_n as_o you_o be_v but_o touch_v the_o religion_n &_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n i_o will_v answer_v you_o in_o his_o behalf_n and_o of_o all_o other_o minister_n and_o member_n thereof_o that_o no_o excuse_n will_v serve_v you_o upon_o so_o slender_a reason_n as_o you_o bring_v to_o condemn_v the_o same_o of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n nor_o to_o defend_v that_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n whereof_o you_o profess_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o champion_n to_o be_v the_o undefiled_a church_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ._n for_o think_v you_o m._n sanders_n that_o we_o will_v more_o mislike_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n persecute_v by_o the_o hypocritical_a cruelty_n of_o antichrist_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 5._o or_o 6._o hundred_o year_n before_o our_o age_n than_o we_o do_v the_o same_o persecute_v by_o the_o furious_a rage_n of_o heathenish_a tyrant_n for_o 300._o year_n after_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o same_o among_o the_o gentill_n and_o think_v you_o if_o we_o be_v now_o to_o learn_v that_o all_o that_o glory_n and_o bright_a shine_a of_o christ_n church_n promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o carnal_a heavenly_a and_o not_o earthly_a eternal_a &_o not_o transitory_a or_o that_o we_o know_v not_o your_o synagogue_n to_o be_v the_o very_a contrary_a kingdom_n and_o sea_n of_o antichrist_n even_o by_o that_o outward_a glory_n and_o glister_a pomp_n of_o open_a show_n that_o you_o boast_v of_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o revelation_n apoc._n 13._o &_o 17._o and_o as_o for_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n whereof_o you_o have_v never_o do_v babble_v by_o the_o plain_n context_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o every_o true_a pastor_n and_o minister_n thereof_o who_o be_v also_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o a_o candle_n set_v on_o a_o candlestick_n to_o give_v light_n not_o hiden_n under_o a_o bushel_n to_o be_v unprofitable_a mat._n 5._o and_o christ_n have_v always_o be_v with_o his_o church_n although_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v depart_v from_o he_o and_o he_o both_o live_v &_o reign_v for_o ever_o over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n though_o he_o be_v persecute_v in_o his_o member_n by_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o his_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentiles_n from_o the_o sun_n rise_v to_o the_o go_v down_o thereof_o notwithstanding_o that_o all_o nation_n have_v drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o her_o fornication_n the_o prophecy_n of_o god_n spirit_n do_v not_o one_o of_o they_o overthrow_v the_o other_o but_o the_o one_o show_v how_o the_o other_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o whereas_o you_o say_v our_o church_n have_v be_v under_o a_o bushel_n before_o these_o fifty_o year_n because_o no_o history_n make_v mention_n of_o any_o congregation_n profess_v our_o faith_n in_o any_o town_n or_o place_n of_o diverse_a country_n at_n once_o i_o answer_v this_o be_v as_o true_a as_o all_o your_o doctrine_n beside_o for_o all_o ancient_a history_n that_o write_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o we_o profess_v and_o although_o toward_o the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n the_o purity_n of_o the_o faith_n begin_v to_o be_v pollute_v yet_o the_o substance_n thereof_o continue_v until_o by_o antichrist_n that_o great_a defection_n &_o apostasy_n be_v make_v whereof_o the_o apostle_n prophecy_v 2._o thess._n 2._o 3._o and_o yet_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o a_o postasie_n many_o history_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o church_n in_o diverse_a country_n in_o europe_n namely_o england_n france_n italy_n or_o although_o under_o cruel_a persecution_n and_o tyranny_n beside_o great_a nation_n of_o the_o east_n which_o never_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o retain_v the_o substance_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o profession_n though_o not_o without_o particular_a error_n and_o superstition_n wherefore_o although_o they_o that_o be_v blind_a or_o far_o of_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o see_v her_o glory_n although_o she_o have_v be_v set_v upon_o never_o so_o high_a a_o hill_n no_o more_o than_o a_o city_n build_v upon_o the_o alps_n can_v
will_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v first_o with_o the_o papist_n for_o if_o by_o god_n word_n we_o mean_v the_o write_a letter_n of_o the_o bible_n they_o be_v before_o we_o because_o we_o have_v none_o assure_v copy_n thereof_o which_o we_o receive_v not_o of_o they_o for_o since_o that_o day_n in_o which_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n deliver_v god_n word_n to_o the_o roman_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o keep_v it_o without_o lose_v or_o corrupt_v i_o answer_v we_o mean_v not_o by_o god_n word_n the_o write_a letter_n only_o but_o receyve_v and_o obey_v the_o true_a and_o plain_a sense_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n again_o i_o deny_v that_o we_o have_v any_o assure_a copy_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n but_o the_o one_o of_o the_o jew_n in_o hebrew_n the_o other_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o greek_a and_o whereas_o he_o talk_v of_o a_o certain_a day_n in_o which_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n deliver_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o roman_n it_o savore_v altogether_o of_o a_o popish_a fable_n final_o how_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o these_o last_o day_n have_v keep_v the_o scripture_n from_o corruption_n although_o i_o can_v show_v by_o a_o hundred_o example_n yet_o this_o one_o shall_v suffice_v for_o all_o the_o very_a first_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n gen._n 3._o that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n the_o popish_a church_n have_v either_o wilful_o corrupt_v or_o negligent_o suffer_v to_o be_v deprave_a thus_o ipsa_fw-la conteret_fw-la caput_fw-la iwm_fw-la she_o shall_v break_v thy_o head_n refer_v that_o to_o the_o woman_n which_o god_n speak_v express_o to_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n the_o second_o mark_n be_v that_o the_o papist_n acknowledge_v more_o of_o the_o bible_n than_o we_o do_v by_o the_o book_n of_o toby_n 2._o judeth_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o of_o the_o maccabee_n i_o answer_v in_o that_o you_o add_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o certain_a argument_n that_o you_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v ever_o account_v those_o book_n for_o apocryphal_a witness_v hereof_o hieronym_n praef_n in_o proverb_n sicut_fw-la ergo_fw-la judith_n &_o tobiae_n &_o machabaeorum_n libros_fw-la legit_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o haec_fw-la duo_fw-la volumina_fw-la legate_n ad_fw-la aedificationem_fw-la plebis_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la auctoritatem_fw-la ecclesiasticorun_n dogmatum_fw-la confirmandam_fw-la therefore_o as_o the_o church_n do_v in_o deed_n read_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n tobias_n and_o of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o she_o receyve_v they_o not_o among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o she_o may_v read_v these_o two_o book_n mean_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o people_n but_o not_o to_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a opinion_n nether_a be_v augustine_n the_o doct_n christ._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 8._o who_o m._n saunder_n quote_v of_o any_o other_o judgement_n but_o prescribe_v rule_n how_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v know_v and_o count_n gaudent_fw-la epist_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 23._o he_o confess_v plain_o that_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n be_v not_o account_v of_o the_o jew_n as_o the_o law_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o psalm_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n admit_v as_o his_o witness_n yet_o it_o be_v receyve_v of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v read_v or_o hear_v sober_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n receive_v it_o not_o absolute_o as_o part_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o under_o condition_n of_o a_o sober_a reader_n or_o hearer_n as_o for_o the_o decree_n ascribe_v to_o gelasius_n it_o have_v no_o sufficient_a credit_n of_o antiquity_n and_o much_o less_o the_o late_a counsel_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n which_o he_o quote_v beside_o that_o the_o same_o decree_n of_o gelasius_n admit_v but_o one_o book_n of_o esdras_n exclude_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o nehemias_n and_o receyve_v but_o one_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n which_o will_v do_v the_o papist_n but_o small_a pleasure_n the_o three_o mark_n the_o popish_a church_n receyve_v not_o 3._o only_o the_o hebrue_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n &_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o new_a but_o also_o the_o greek_a translation_n of_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la and_o the_o common_a latin_a translation_n to_o be_v of_o full_a authority_n whereas_o we_o give_v small_a credit_n to_o those_o translation_n except_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o first_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a copy_n therefore_o the_o papist_n have_v god_n word_n in_o more_o authentic_a tongue_n and_o copy_n than_o we_o have_v i_o answer_v the_o tridentine_a council_n allow_v none_o for_o authentical_a but_o the_o common_a latin_a translation_n that_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o but_o in_o that_o the_o popish_a church_n admit_v differ_v translation_n from_o the_o original_a truth_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n to_o be_v of_o full_a authority_n with_o the_o truth_n it_o appear_v plain_o that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o either_o wilful_o confound_v error_n with_o truth_n or_o else_o lack_v the_o spirit_n of_o discretion_n to_o know_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o for_o more_o authentic_a copy_n it_o be_v impudent_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n do_v receive_v for_o we_o receive_v not_o only_o all_o these_o which_o he_o name_v but_o also_o the_o most_o ancient_a chaldee_n paraphrastes_n &_o the_o syrian_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n yea_o the_o arabicall_a text_n of_o the_o whole_a bible_n beside_o all_o vulgar_a translation_n of_o english_a french_a dutch_a italian_a spanish_a which_o the_o papist_n can_v not_o abide_v all_o those_o i_o say_v we_o receyve_v as_o authentical_a copy_n for_o christian_a man_n to_o use_v but_o so_o that_o the_o trial_n of_o all_o translation_n be_v make_v by_o the_o original_a truth_n of_o the_o heb●ue_n and_o greek_a text_n in_o which_o tongue_n the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v first_o write_v four_o the_o papist_n do_v translate_v and_o expound_v 4._o god_n word_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o tongue_n better_a than_o we_o because_o they_o have_v not_o only_o internal_a vocation_n but_o also_o external_a vocation_n and_o commission_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o lineal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o preeste_n whereas_o we_o have_v no_o commission_n but_o ●rom_o the_o common_a wealth_n which_o have_v none_o authority_n to_o make_v preeste_n &c_n &c_n and_o yet_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v if_o they_o be_v not_o send_v rom._n 10._o i_o answer_v concern_v translation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o all_o tongue_n i_o never_o see_v any_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o translation_n to_o be_v show_v of_o any_o papist_n into_o any_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o as_o for_o the_o external_a call_n of_o the_o papist_n i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o from_o any_o lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a church_n who_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n they_o do_v not_o follow_v in_o their_o interpretation_n for_o if_o lineal_a succession_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n can_v make_v interpretation_n good_a the_o doctrine_n of_o arius_n nestorius_n macedonius_n and_o many_o other_o heretic_n who_o external_a calling_n be_v according_a to_o the_o lineal_a and_o ordinary_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n may_v be_v auctorise_v for_o catholic_a yea_o the_o papist_n may_v not_o refuse_v whatsoever_o luther_n bucer_n cranmer_n and_o other_o have_v teach_v which_o have_v the_o same_o lineal_a succession_n that_o m._n saunder_n do_v now_o brag_v of_o and_o as_o for_o our_o external_a call_n he_o say_v false_o it_o be_v of_o the_o common_a weal_n &c_n &c_n whereas_o it_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o ordinary_a and_o lawful_a and_o the_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o he_o cit_v rom._n the_o ten_o be_v of_o the_o inward_a call_n and_o send_v by_o god_n whereof_o our_o doctrine_n agreeable_a with_o the_o scripture_n and_o our_o whole_a intent_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n the_o one_o to_o satisfy_v man_n the_o other_o to_o answer_v our_o own_o conscience_n five_o he_o say_v it_o be_v no_o perfection_n at_o all_o on_o our_o side_n 5._o that_o we_o read_v god_n word_n to_o the_o people_n in_o our_o church_n service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n for_o thereby_o we_o lack_v the_o use_n of_o the_o better_a tongue_n as_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a o_o master_n of_o impudency_n what_o use_n be_v there_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a tongue_n to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n
if_o their_o interpretation_n be_v none_o other_o than_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n do_v give_v they_o make_v the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o drink_a vessel_n but_o to_o discuss_v his_o example_n the_o first_o be_v this_o text_n matth._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n why_o say_v he_o be_v this_o which_o christ_n point_v to_o deny_v to_o be_v his_o body_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v 1_o his_o body_n in_o that_o sense_n that_o he_o speak_v and_o otherwise_o then_o he_o mean_v it_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v his_o body_n again_o james_n say_v cap._n 2._o a_o man_n be_v justify_v of_o work_n &_o not_o of_o faith_n only_o why_o then_o be_v work_n deny_v to_o justify_v or_o 2_o only_a faith_n teach_v to_o justify_v i_o answer_n work_v be_v not_o deny_v to_o justify_v before_o man_n and_o only_a faith_n be_v teach_v to_o justify_v before_o god_n rom._n 3._o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v justify_v rom._n 2._o why_o then_o 3_o teach_v you_o the_o law_n not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o be_v do_v because_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n none_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n rom._n 3._o 20._o for_o if_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n can_v be_v do_v by_o any_o man_n perfect_o as_o the_o law_n require_v he_o shall_v be_v justify_v by_o they_o as_o the_o text_n affirm_v by_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o that_o be_v christ_n many_o shall_v be_v 4_o make_v righteous_a rom._n 5._o why_o then_o be_v we_o deny_v to_o be_v real_o righteous_a and_o say_v to_o be_v righteous_a by_o imputation_n only_o because_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o our_o obedience_n but_o by_o imputation_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v spread_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v give_v us._n rom._n 5._o this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o bare_a impute_v 5_o of_o righteousness_n to_o we_o yea_o sir_n but_o this_o be_v not_o our_o justification_n but_o a_o effect_n thereof_o for_o he_o say_v immediate_o before_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o joh._n 20_o 6_o why_o then_o be_v bishop_n and_o priest_n deny_v to_o forgive_v sin_n we_o grant_v that_o true_a bishop_n and_o elder_n have_v authority_n to_o forgive_v sin_n in_o god_n name_n but_o not_o absolute_o he_o that_o be_v great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o be_v make_v as_o the_o young_a 7_o luke_n 22._o why_o then_o deny_v you_o that_o one_o be_v great_a among_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v still_o among_o the_o bishop_n their_o successor_n one_o be_v not_o great_a among_o the_o apostle_n in_o authority_n for_o their_o greatness_n be_v to_o be_v the_o great_a servant_n &_o to_o take_v the_o most_o pain_n &_o to_o be_v most_o humble_a mat._n 18_o thou_o be_v peter_n or_o a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v 8_o my_o church_n mat._n 16_o why_o be_v the_o militant_a church_n deny_v to_o be_v build_v upons_o peter_n and_o his_o suceessor_n in_o that_o chair_n and_o office_n the_o church_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o so_o upon_o peter_n as_o one_o of_o they_o in_o which_o office_n he_o have_v no_o successor_n keep_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o a_o epistle_n 1._o thessa._n 2._o why_o then_o be_v tradition_n 9_o so_o despise_v that_o the_o name_n can_v be_v suffer_v in_o the_o english_a bible_n it_o may_v and_o be_v suffer_v in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v it_o but_o not_o to_o bring_v in_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n under_o the_o name_n of_o tradition_n apostolic_a for_o the_o apostle_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o deliver_v to_o they_o either_o by_o preach_v or_o by_o epistle_n which_o be_v none_o other_o then_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a seripture_n for_o of_o other_o tradition_n pretend_v to_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n he_o bid_v they_o take_v heed_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n vers_fw-la 2._o he_o that_o join_v his_o virgin_n in_o marriage_n do_v well_o and_o he_o 10_o that_o do_v not_o join_v she_o do_v better_a why_o make_v you_o marriage_n as_o good_a as_o virginity_n for_o such_o as_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o continence_n we_o grant_v virginity_n be_v better_a in_o such_o respect_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v vow_v eye_n and_o render_v your_o vow_n unto_o god_n psal._n 75._o if_o 11_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a go_v and_o sell_v all_o thing_n which_o thou_o haste_v &_o give_v they_o to_o the_o poor_a &_o follow_v i_o mat._n 19_o there_o be_v eunuch_n which_o have_v geld_v themselves_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n obey_v your_o ruler_n and_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o why_o they_o be_v the_o vow_n of_o poverty_n of_o chastity_n and_o obedience_n count_v unlawful_a or_o man_n constrain_v not_o to_o perform_v they_o the_o first_o text_n pertain_v to_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o second_o be_v a_o singular_a trial_n to_o that_o one_o place_n the_o three_o we_o grant_v in_o they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v the_o four_o we_o never_o make_v question_n about_o it_o but_o all_o these_o be_v evil_a favoured_o patch_v together_o to_o prove_v the_o vow_n of_o monkery_n lawful_a which_o be_v superstitious_a for_o want_v of_o god_n commandment_n blasphemous_a for_o the_o opinion_n of_o merit_n impossible_a for_o the_o frailty_n of_o many_o man_n nature_n as_o for_o compulsion_n there_o be_v none_o use_v for_o no_o man_n be_v compel_v to_o be_v rich_a unchaste_a or_o disobedient_a do_v you_o the_o worthy_a fruit_n of_o penance_n luc._n 3._o why_o they_o 12_o be_v satisfaction_n and_o penance_n desptse_v with_o you_o this_o text_n be_v do_v you_o the_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o repentance_n we_o honour_v the_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o true_a repentance_n and_o exhort_v all_o man_n to_o bring_v they_o forth_o but_o popish_a satisfaction_n have_v nothing_o like_o to_o they_o for_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n do_v free_o forgive_v the_o penitent_a for_o christ_n sake_n the_o husband_n &_o wife_n be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n be_v a_o great_a 13_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n in_o christ_n &_o in_o the_o church_n ephe._n 5._o why_o be_v then_o the_o marriage_n of_o faithful_a person_n deny_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n if_o you_o understand_v a_o sacrament_n general_o for_o every_o mystery_n we_o may_v grant_v you_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n but_o if_o you_o understand_v a_o sacrament_n special_o for_o a_o outward_a sign_n of_o god_n favour_n &_o grace_n or_o a_o seal_n of_o our_o justification_n it_o be_v none_o for_o if_o it_o be_v it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o all_o man_n to_o receive_v it_o again_o it_o have_v the_o institution_n of_o god_n before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n therefore_o can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o new_a testament_n to_o testify_v our_o restitution_n your_o common_a translation_n turn_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v a_o holy_a secret_n oftentime_n sacramentum_fw-la yet_o i_o know_v you_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v so_o many_o sacrament_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n as_o there_o be_v mystery_n which_o he_o call_v sacrament_n as_o ephe._n 3._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n he_o call_v sacramentum_fw-la 1._o tim._n 3._o so_o he_o call_v the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n sacramentum_fw-la pietatis_fw-la and_o be_v you_o not_o ashamed_a to_o delude_v ignorant_a man_n with_o the_o ambiguous_a name_n of_o a_o sacrament_n work_v your_o salvation_n with_o fear_n &_o tremble_a phi._n 2._o why_o then_o be_v you_o so_o presumptuous_a as_o even_o by_o faith_n to_o assure_v your_o 14_o self_n of_o you_o salvation_n because_o it_o follow_v immediate_o that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v according_a to_o his_o good_a will_n for_o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n to_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v true_a and_o he_o may_v welfeare_n which_o be_v assure_v to_o be_v save_v for_o faith_n do_v not_o exclude_v but_o plant_v in_o we_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n though_o not_o a_o servile_a fear_n as_o for_o y_z e_z deep_a secret_n of_o god_n predestination_n we_o take_v not_o upon_o we_o to_o know_v they_o otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v reveal_v by_o his_o word_n final_o where_o you_o ask_v whether_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o ordinary_a gift_n in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v you_o w_o t_o the_o apostle_n that_o all_o man_n which_o be_v in_o the_o outward_a face_n of_o the_o church_n and_o participate_v
word_n of_o god_n allow_v or_o the_o primitive_a church_n acknowledge_v &_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o other_o they_o have_v either_o altogether_o pervert_v the_o institution_n as_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n or_o shameful_o corrupt_v it_o with_o superstition_n as_o in_o baptism_n they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n when_o we_o allege_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o romish_a antichrist_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o our_o church_n have_v not_o flourish_v 13_o in_o outward_a peace_n &_o to_o be_v a_o mark_n also_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o congregation_n what_o master_n say_v d._n sanders_n antichrist_n persecution_n shall_v dure_v but_o three_o year_n &_o a_o half_a and_o be_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n who_o have_v dure_v these_o 900._o year_n but_o good_a m._n doctor_n determiner_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o antichrist_n persecution_n shall_v dure_v but_o three_o &_o a_o half_a of_o such_o year_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v dure_v 900._o you_o quote_v dan._n 7._o apoc._n 13._o you_o may_v by_o as_o good_a reason_n say_v it_o shall_v dure_v but_o three_o day_n &_o a_o half_a apoc._n 11._o 9_o will_v you_o take_v upon_o you_o so_o precise_o to_o determine_v of_o the_o mystical_a number_n which_o be_v sometime_o call_v 3._o year_n &_o a_o half_a sometime_o 42._o month_n sometime_o 1260._o day_n sometime_o 3._o day_n &_o a_o half_a sometime_o a_o time_n &_o time_n &_o half_o a_o time_n all_o which_o make_v half_o a_o prophetical_a week_n &_o signify_v a_o time_n determine_v of_o god_n but_o not_o plain_o reveal_v to_o many_o second_o you_o ask_v how_o it_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n against_o with_o c_o antichrist_n so_o long_o prevail_v that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v whether_o any_o such_o be_v in_o y_z e_z earth_n when_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o y_o e_o true_a church_n i_o answer_v if_o you_o can_v not_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o impugn_v &_o prevail_a you_o will_v have_v much_o to_o do_v to_o defend_v your_o romish_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n against_o the_o turk_n themselves_o who_o have_v possess_v a_o great_a part_n of_o ●●●●_o ground_n w_z c_o you_o say_v pertein_v once_o to_o your_o church_n but_o herein_o appear_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n against_o with_o c_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v not_o prevail_v that_o although_o satan_n be_v let_v loose_a the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n drunken_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o her_o member_n her_o two_o witness_n slay_v she_o herself_o drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n her_o seed_n persecute_v wheresoever_o they_o be_v disperse_v yet_o she_o be_v restore_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n her_o witness_n raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n the_o devil_n be_v vanquish_v y_z e_z purple_a whore_n of_o babylon_n be_v fall_v &_o antechrist_n shall_v at_o length_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o lake_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n this_o be_v the_o lord_n work_n &_o it_o be_v marvellous_a in_o our_o eye_n if_o either_o persecution_n or_o not_o fail_v in_o persecution_n be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v more_o in_o the_o papist_n they_o in_o the_o 15_o protestant_n for_o persecution_n he_o will_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v persecute_v by_o we_o as_o the_o mother_n by_o y_z e_z child_n which_o depart_v from_o her_o obedience_n as_o agar_n &_o ishmael_n from_o sara_n but_o i_o answer_v we_o be_v depart_v from_o agar_n under_o who_o we_o be_v in_o bondage_n to_o sara_n by_o who_o we_o be_v make_v child_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n &_o even_o as_o agar_n depart_v from_o sara_n so_o do_v the_o synagoge_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ._n for_o not_o fail_v in_o persecution_n experience_n teach_v in_o all_o country_n w_o c_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n how_o small_a punishmenty_n great_a number_n of_o papist_n will_v abide_v for_o their_o popish_a profession_n whereas_o so_o many_o thousand_o go●s_a saint_n be_v most_o cruel_o murder_v by_o y_z e_z popish_a church_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o diminish_v but_o increase_v thereby_o even_o as_o cyprian_n say_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o church_n if_o antiquity_n be_v a_o mark_n it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v on_o the_o papist_n side_n by_o this_o reason_n the_o church_n be_v all_o one_o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o church_n for_o 900._o year_n last_o pass_v be_v on_o the_o papist_n side_n therefore_o the_o former_a part_n also_o but_o this_o reason_n stand_v upon_o a_o shameful_a beg_n of_o that_o which_o be_v question_v be_v soon_o turn_v upon_o your_o ownen_n neck_n the_o church_n be_v in_o all_o but_o one_o but_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n make_v not_o for_o you_o therefore_o that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v contrary_a to_o that_o former_a be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o by_o this_o reason_n you_o shall_v neither_o have_v antiquity_n or_o any_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o appeal_v to_o particular_a example_n say_v m._n saunder_n i_o say_v the_o christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v 2_o communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n at_o emaus_n and_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o i_o say_v m._n saunder_n if_o he_o will_v burst_v himself_o with_o study_n shall_v never_o prove_v it_o he_o quote_v aug._n de_fw-fr consen_v euang_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o who_o opinion_n be_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o sacrament_n at_o emaus_n but_o of_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n 3_o he_o never_o once_o dream_v he_o say_v the_o christian_n do_v set_v up_o image_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n quote_v eus._n lib._n 7._o cap._n 14._o whereas_o eusebius_n speak_v of_o heathen_a man_n that_o of_o heathenish_a custom_n do_v set_v up_o image_n and_o not_o of_o christian_n dionysius_n although_o he_o be_v ancient_a yet_o he_o write_v not_o 4_o in_o the_o time_n of_o eusebius_n hieronymus_n or_o gennadius_n &_o so_o be_v know_v for_o no_o writer_n in_o y_z e_z church_n for_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n wherefore_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v about_o his_o error_n and_o ceremony_n which_o yet_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v as_o unlike_o the_o popish_a ceremony_n as_o they_o be_v to_o we_o although_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o write_n of_o ignatius_n which_o be_v extant_a yet_o be_v there_o nothing_o in_o they_o that_o favore_v the_o papist_n religion_n he_o name_v a_o a_o sacrifice_n which_o can_v not_o be_v offer_v without_o the_o bishop_n that_o can_v be_v the_o mass_n which_o every_o head_n geprieste_n may_v say_v ad_fw-la symrn._n he_o will_v have_v the_o emperor_n obey_v the_o bishop_n say_v m._n sand._n ad_fw-la phil._n but_o this_o prove_v the_o epistle_n to_o be_v counterfeit_n for_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a emperor_n when_o ignatius_n live_v although_o in_o divine_a matter_n the_o christian_a emperor_n ought_v to_o obey_v the_o bishop_n or_o rather_o god_n word_n which_o y_o e_z bishop_n preach_v also_o he_o speak_v of_o virgin_n that_o have_v consecrate_v themselves_o to_o god_n &_o who_o speak_v against_o they_o which_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o continency_n do_v keep_v virginity_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o affirm_v both_o peter_n and_o paul_n to_o have_v be_v marry_v and_o will_v not_o condemn_v the_o marriage_n of_o church_n minister_n he_o commend_v the_o lend_v fast_o ad_fw-la antioch_n choose_v m._n saunder_n whether_o your_o decretal_n lie_v of_o thelesphorus_n that_o invent_v the_o lend_v fast_o or_o that_o this_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a epistle_n of_o ignatius_n in_o the_o epistle_n ad_fw-la phil._n where_o he_o commend_v the_o 40._o day_n fast_o the_o wednesday_n &_o the_o friday_n fast_o he_o say_v far_a quicunque_fw-la dominicum_fw-la aut_fw-la sabbathum_fw-la non_fw-la ieiunaverit_n praet●r_fw-la unum_fw-la sabbathum_fw-la pas●ae_fw-la ipse_fw-la est_fw-la christi_fw-la interfector_n whosoever_o shall_v not_o fast_v the_o lord_n day_n or_o sabbat_n beside_o one_o sabbat_n of_o easter_n he_o be_v a_o murderer_n of_o christ._n if_o this_o be_v true_a antiquity_n why_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n omit_v fast_o on_o sunday_n if_o it_o be_v counterfeit_a why_o be_v not_o m._n saunder_n ashamed_a to_o allege_v it_o justinus_n witness_v that_o water_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o wine_n 5_o yea_o but_o it_o be_v to_o allay_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o wine_n not_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o sacrament_n though_o afterward_o it_o grow_v to_o a_o superstitious_a observation_n he_o say_v further_a the_o deacon_n carry_v the_o consecrate_a mysiery_n to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a which_o caluine_n repute_v for_o a_o abuse_n if_o they_o carry_v the_o bread_n &_o the_o wine_n as_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v a_o abuse_n not_o to_o
that_o he_o deserve_v so_o to_o be_v and_o therefore_o have_v need_v especial_o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n as_o his_o offence_n be_v more_o shameful_a then_o of_o any_o of_o the_o other_o therefore_o the_o second_o reason_n that_o he_o bring_v of_o his_o restitution_n if_o he_o have_v lose_v it_o be_v superfluous_a joh._n 20_o for_o he_o be_v none_o otherwise_o restore_v then_o the_o rest_n be_v but_o at_o this_o time_n especial_o confirm_v as_o his_o special_a case_n require_v his_o last_o reason_n be_v that_o admit_v peter_n have_v not_o be_v restore_v before_o this_o time_n yet_o now_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o a_o great_a authority_n than_o any_o other_o apostle_n have_v receve_v at_o any_o time_n and_o whereas_o we_o reply_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a by_o testimony_n of_o cyprian_a and_o hieromes_n he_o aunswear_v by_o distinction_n forsooth_o that_o they_o be_v equal_a in_o apostleship_n and_o yet_o peter_n be_v chief_a of_o t●e_v apostle_n and_o a_o ordinary_a chief_a shepherd_n or_o high_a toyshop_n wherein_o they_o be_v all_o inferior_n to_o he_o and_o ●●ee_v be_v their_o primate_n and_o their_o head_n and_o this_o distinction_n he_o promise_v to_o prove_v exact_o hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a paradox_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v equal_a with_o peter_n in_o apostleshipp_n and_o yet_o peter_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n he_o that_o can_v prove_v inequality_n to_o be_v where_o he_o grant_v equallitie_n to_o be_v and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n be_v a_o strange_a logition_n final_o where_o as_o some_o man_n grant_v peter_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n deny_v the_o honour_n to_o his_o successor_n he_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o none_o other_o have_v all_o that_o authority_n which_o peter_n sometime_o have_v and_o consequent_o that_o the_o protestant_n come_v near_o to_o the_o nature_n &_o condition_n of_o antichrist_n than_o any_o pope_n of_o rome_n ever_o do_v or_o can_v do_v the_o second_o chapter_n that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a primacy_n of_o spiritual_a government_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n though_o not_o proper_o a_o lordlynesse_n saunder_n or_o heathenish_a dominion_n and_o in_o what_o sort_n this_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n differ_v from_o the_o lordly_a government_n ofsecule_a prince_n and_o how_o it_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o the_o apostle_n strife_n concern_v superiority_n be_v declare_v that_o there_o ●as_v one_o great_a among_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v a_o ruler_n and_o as_o a_o minister_n do_v not_o repugn_v the_o pre-eminence_n of_o priest_n above_o king_n a_o king_n can_v not_o be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n because_o by_o right_n and_o law_n he_o can_v not_o practice_v all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v prefer_v before_o the_o king_n by_o god_n law_n the_o evil_a life_n of_o a_o bishop_n take_v not_o away_o his_o authority_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o temporal_a prince_n that_o moses_n be_v a_o priest_n the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o fulke_n ministry_n or_o service_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n peter_n &_o therefore_o neither_o proper_o nor_o unproper_o a_o godliness_n or_o hethenish_a dominion_n but_o altogether_o as_o unlike_a to_o it_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o pattern_n of_o all_o true_a minister_n be_v unlike_a to_o a_o earthly_a lord_n or_o a_o heathen_a prince_n but_o whereas_o m._n saunder_n in_o the_o first_o sentence_n of_o this_o chapter_n say_v that_o no_o man_n proper_o can_v t●e_v lord_n among_o the_o christian_n where_o all_o be_v servant_n indifferent_o under_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o true_a lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ._n he_o show_v himself_o not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o papist_n ●ut_v also_o a_o anabaptist_n for_o the_o common_a service_n that_o we_o o●●e_v unto_o christ_n hinder_v not_o but_o that_o a_o christian_a man_n ●ay_v be_v lord_n &_o king_n over_o his_o fellow_n servant_n and_o thren_n in_o christ_n as_o proper_o as_o ever_o he_o may_v be_v before_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n who_o say_v himself_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n who_o himself_n be_v obedient_a and_o teach_v obedience_n both_o to_o god_n and_o caesar_n to_o each_o in_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o they_o &_o that_o dominion_n which_o he_o forbid_v unto_o his_o apostle_n like_v to_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o nation_n luc._n 22._o matth._n 20._o and_o which_o s._n peter_n forbid_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o pet._n 5._o be_v not_o prohibit_v to_o all_o christian_n but_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n only_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o ministry_n and_o yet_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o government_n of_o the_o church_n &_o some_o kind_n of_o primacy_n also_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o scripture_n then_o that_o it_o need_v any_o proof_n especial_o such_o slender_a prove_n as_o m._n san._n bring_v &_o namely_o where_o he_o cit_v this_o text_n feed_v my_o sheep_n to_o signify_v that_o peter_n shall_v give_v every_o man_n his_o dew_n portion_n &_o just_a measure_n of_o victual_n in_o convenient_a time_n which_o thing_n neither_o peter_n do_v neither_o be_v he_o able_a to_o do_v and_o much_o less_o any_o man_n in_o succession_n to_o he_o which_o be_v not_o equal_a in_o gift_n with_o he_o and_o therefore_o the_o example_n of_o a_o stuarde_n who_o may_v provide_v for_o a_o competent_a number_n of_o one_o family_n be_v fond_o apply_v to_o make_v one_o steward_n over_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o he_o that_o be_v almighty_a for_o although_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o any_o certain_a congregation_n but_o be_v general_a ambassador_n into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o appoint_v to_o give_v to_o every_o man_n his_o dew_n portion_n but_o to_o appoint_v pastor_n in_o every_o church_n and_o town_n for_o that_o purpose_n tit._n 1._o act_n 14._o verse_n 23_o &_o they_o themselves_o to_o proceed_v in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o their_o general_a commission_n and_o therefore_o although_o m._n saunder_n in_o apply_v these_o word_n of_o jeronime_n cont._n luciferanos_fw-es which_o he_o call_v exortem_fw-la quandam_fw-la &_o eminentem_fw-la potestatem_fw-la a_o certain_a peerless_a and_o high_a power_n and_o of_o cyprian_a lib._n 1._o ep._n 3._o of_o one_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n for_o that_o time_n etc._n etc._n true_a every_o several_a pastor_n or_o as_o he_o term_v they_o parish_n priest_n deal_v more_o honest_o than_o other_o papist_n that_o draw_v the_o same_o testimony_n as_o proper_a to_o the_o pope_n sovereign_a authority_n yet_o in_o that_o he_o argue_v that_o the_o like_a shall_v be_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a which_o be_v in_o every_o parish_n it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o compass_n of_o reason_n for_o that_o which_o be_v possible_a in_o the_o one_o be_v altogether_o impossible_a in_o the_o other_o and_o the_o argument_n be_v no_o better_o then_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v one_o steward_n in_o every_o college_n or_o great_a house_n therefore_o there_o be_v be_v one_o steward_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o whereas_o he_o will_v prove_v his_o matter_n good_a by_o that_o s._n mat._n cap._n 10._o rehearse_v the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n call_v peter_n the_o first_o it_o be_v to_o childish_a &_o frivolous_a for_o in_o every_o number_n one_o or_o other_o must_v be_v the_o first_o &_o it_o seem_v that_o peter_n be_v first_o call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o apostleship_n therefore_o his_o primacy_n be_v of_o order_n &_o not_o of_o authority_n nether_a be_v he_o always_o first_o name_v for_o gal._n 3._o 9_o where_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n be_v name_v before_o cephas_n or_o peter_n as_o he_o be_v indeed_o elect_v to_o be_v the_o principal_a minister_n at_o jerusalem_n by_o consent_n of_o most_o ancient_a writer_n neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v call_v princeps_fw-la populi_fw-la a_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n therefore_o peter_n be_v make_v prince_n of_o all_o christian_a man_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n alone_o call_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n as_o m._n s._n seem_v to_o say_v neither_o have_v peter_n by_o those_o word_n feed_v my_o shape_z any_o authority_n commit_v unto_o he_o more_o than_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n or_o term_v of_o dominion_n sometime_o give_fw-ge by_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n to_o the_o bishop_n or_o his_o government_n we_o strive_v not_o about_o it_o so_o there_o be_v no_o such_o dominion_n by_o he_o exercise_v
as_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n forbid_v &_o as_o we_o see_v to_o be_v usurp_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n &_o his_o clergy_n howsoever_o m._n saunder_n in_o term_n of_o distinction_n will_v seem_v to_o shadow_v it_o but_o he_o will_v show_v out_o one_o of_o these_o place_n which_o we_o allege_v as_o if_o it_o do_v utter_o forbid_v all_o superiority_n among_o the_o disciple_n luc_fw-fr 22_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n be_v clear_o establish_v and_o confirm_v first_o he_o say_v most_o untrue_o that_o we_o deny_v all_o superiority_n among_o the_o discyple_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o we_o deny_v all_o government_n among_o christian_n except_o he_o do_v childish_o understande_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o minister_n ecclesiastical_a only_o and_o yet_o we_o deny_v not_o all_o superiority_n among_o they_o but_o that_o kind_a of_o primacy_n which_o the_o pope_n claim_v and_o tyrannical_o usurp_v second_o he_o make_v a_o long_a preamble_n before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n that_o although_o the_o apostle_n do_v diverse_a time_n strive_v for_o the_o primacy_n as_o in_o the_o way_n to_o capharnaum_n mark._n 9_o upon_o the_o request_n of_o zebedees_n wife_n mark_n 10._o &_o after_o his_o last_o supper_n luk._n 22._o yet_o christ_n never_o deny_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o great_a among_o they_o and_o often_o signify_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v s._n peter_n especial_o when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n if_o you_o demand_v why_o they_o strive_v for_o supremacy_n when_o he_o have_v determine_v it_o he_o yield_v a_o substantial_a reason_n because_o while_o christ_n live_v upon_o earth_n it_o be_v in_o his_o free_a choice_n to_o have_v appoint_v it_o otherwise_o until_o at_o the_o last_o in_o the_o 21._o of_o john_n he_o say_v unto_o he_o simon_n thou_o son_n of_o jona._n etc._n etc._n by_o these_o it_o appear_v that_o m._n saunder_n confess_v that_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n more_o direct_o and_o plain_o then_o this_o of_o john_n 21._o which_o when_o every_o child_n see_v how_o little_a force_n it_o have_v to_o prove_v it_o you_o may_v easy_o judge_v that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o against_o their_o own_o conscience_n do_v enforce_v all_o other_o text_n utter_v before_o to_o establish_v it_o and_o namely_o this_o of_o luke_n 22._o in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n take_v uppe_o the_o strife_n that_o be_v among_o his_o apostle_n about_o the_o primacy_n end_v his_o talk_n at_o last_o with_o simon_n peter_n show_v he_o to_o be_v that_o one_o that_o be_v great_a than_o the_o rest_n what_o ass_n if_o he_o can_v speak_v with_o man_n voice_n will_v reason_v thus_o that_o because_o christe_o convert_n his_o speech_n from_o exhort_v all_o his_o apostle_n to_o admonish_v peter_n of_o his_o special_a danger_n he_o stand_v in_o by_o his_o infirmity_n signify_v that_o peter_n be_v great_a than_o all_o the_o apostle_n but_o we_o must_v hear_v he_o compare_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n luke_n 22._o with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o mark_v in_o other_o place_n which_o he_o say_v the_o magdeburgen_n cent_n do_v huddle_n up_o as_o they_o be_v alone_o whereas_o they_o differ_v much_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n mat._n 20._o and_o mar._n 10._o be_v these_o whosoever_o among_o you_o will_v be_v great_a let_v he_o be_v your_o servitor_n and_o whosoever_o among_o you_o will_v be_v first_o shall_v be_v your_o servant_n in_o saint_n luke_n 22._o he_o that_o be_v great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o be_v make_v as_o the_o young_a and_o he_o that_o be_v chief_a as_o he_o that_o minister_v m._n saunder_n will_v have_v great_a difference_n to_o be_v in_o these_o say_n first_o general_o that_o the_o former_a sentence_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o greatness_n among_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n but_o all_o christian_n which_o be_v utter_o false_a because_o this_o kind_n of_o greatness_n be_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o to_o who_o external_a dominion_n be_v forbid_v but_o that_o be_v not_o to_o all_o man_n but_o unto_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o their_o successor_n therefore_o this_o kind_n of_o greatness_n be_v proper_a only_o unto_o they_o for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o greatness_n by_o humility_n only_o but_o of_o greatness_n without_o foreign_a dominion_n and_o worldly_a dignity_n and_o join_v with_o service_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o ministry_n ecclesiastical_a second_o he_o make_v six_o frivolous_a difference_n which_o either_o be_v false_a or_o else_o make_v no_o diversity_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n the_o first_o matthew_n and_o mark_n speak_v of_o any_o man_n who_o soever_o s._n luke_n of_o one_o man_n which_o by_o the_o article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v point_v out_o if_o the_o article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v always_o point_n one_o certain_a man_n it_o be_v somewhat_o that_o m._n sand._n say_v but_o if_o ten_o thousand_o time_n and_o more_o as_o every_o man_n mean_o learn_v in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n do_v know_v it_o signify_v not_o one_o certain_a man_n then_o be_v this_o a_o fond_a difference_n the_o second_o the_o other_o speak_v of_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v great_a who_o so_o will_v be_v great_a s._n luke_n of_o the_o effect_n already_o present_a he_o that_o be_v great_a but_o the_o the_o word_n of_o s._n matth._n 18._o ver_fw-la 4._o overthrow_n this_o difference_n with_o the_o former_a for_o there_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a be_v take_v for_o any_o one_o that_o shall_v humble_v himself_o as_o a_o child_n and_o not_o for_o one_o make_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o three_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o letter_n speak_v of_o he_o that_o will_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d great_a s._n luke_n of_o he_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d great_a by_o which_o be_v mente_fw-la the_o great_a of_o all_o after_o the_o greek_a phrase_n but_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o other_o signifi_v the_o great_a according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n use_v by_o both_o which_o call_v he_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o or_o chief_a of_o all_o therefore_o these_o three_o difference_n be_v not_o worth_a three_o chip_n the_o four_o s._n matthew_n call_v he_o that_o will_v be_v great_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o servant_n s._n luke_n give_v no_o name_n of_o service_n to_o he_o that_o be_v great_a but_o he_o be_v will_v to_o be_v young_a or_o underling_n yet_o s._n luke_n in_o another_o place_n cap._n 9_o vers_fw-la 48._o call_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o least_o which_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a but_o what_o fond_a quarrel_v be_v this_o do_v not_o the_o pope_n call_v himself_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o great_a service_n belong_v to_o he_o that_o claim_v the_o great_a dignity_n though_o indeed_o he_o yield_v no_o service_n but_o usurp_v all_o tyranny_n be_v m._n saunder_n now_o ashamed_a of_o that_o service_n that_o the_o pope_n by_o solemn_a title_n have_v so_o long_o profess_v as_o for_o a_o preeminence_n of_o order_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o it_o be_v among_o the_o apostle_n &_o must_v be_v in_o every_o several_a company_n although_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v perpetual_a in_o one_o man_n but_o as_o every_o church_n shall_v ordain_v but_o a_o primacy_n of_o authority_n over_o all_o the_o church_n we_o utter_o deny_v that_o ever_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o peter_n or_o any_o man_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n m._n sand._n cit_v ambrose_n in_o luke_n 22._o to_o prove_v it_o qui_fw-la lapsus_fw-la es_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o which_o do_v slide_v before_o thou_o do_v weep_v after_o thou_o haste_v weep_v be_v set_v upright_o that_o thou_o shouldesirule_v other_o who_o before_o have_v not_o rule_v thyself_o loe_o say_v he_o peter_n do_v rule_v other_o a_o great_a myrracle_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o either_o he_o rule_v all_o man_n or_o that_o he_o rule_v his_o equal_n the_o apostle_n of_o who_o the_o same_o ambrose_n say_v de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 12._o nec_fw-la paulus_n inferior_a petro_n quamuis_fw-la be_v ecclesiae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la &_o hic_fw-la sapiens_fw-la architectus_fw-la s●iens_fw-la vestigia_fw-la credentium_fw-la fundare_fw-la populorum_fw-la neither_o be_v paul_n inferior_a to_o peter_n although_o he_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n &_o paul_n a_o wise_a builder_n know_v how_o to_o find_v the_o step_n of_o the_o people_n beleve_v and_o again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr incarnatione_fw-la domini_fw-la ca._n 4._o hic_fw-la inquam_fw-la ubi_fw-la audivit_fw-la vos_fw-la ●utem_fw-la quid_fw-la
i_o dicitis_fw-la statim_fw-la loci_fw-la non_fw-la immemor_fw-la svi_fw-la primatum_fw-la egit_fw-la primatum_fw-la confessionis_fw-la utique_fw-la non_fw-la honoris_fw-la primatum_fw-la fidei_fw-la non_fw-la ordinis_fw-la this_o peter_n i_o say_v when_o he_o hear_v but_o what_o do_v you_o say_v that_o i_o be_o immediate_o not_o forget_v his_o place_n execute_v his_o primacy_n very_o the_o primacy_n of_o confession_n not_o of_o honour_n the_o primacy_n of_o faith_n not_o of_o degree_n by_o these_o place_n of_o ambrose_n it_o appear_v what_o government_n and_o primacy_n be_v grant_v to_o peter_n and_o how_o he_o exercise_v the_o same_o the_o five_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o other_o evangelist_n say_v absolute_o let_v he_o be_v a_o minister_n &_o a_o seruau●●t_n in_o s._n luke_n it_o be_v say_v with_o a_o great_a moderation_n let_v he_o be_v make_v as_o the_o young_a an_o as_o he_o that_o minister_v if_o this_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v more_o true_o a_o greatness_n then_o a_o ministry_n the_o arrian_n may_v deny_v by_o the_o like_a that_o christ_n be_v more_o true_o a_o man_n then_o the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o saint_n john_n say_v we_o see_v his_o glory_n as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n o_o beastly_a absurdity_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o certain_a man_n great_a among_o the_o apostle_n who_o may_v be_v as_o the_o young_a it_o be_v plain_a contradiction_n to_o christ_n and_o he_o be_v antechrist_n but_o where_o on_o god_n name_n say_v christ_n that_o there_o be_v one_o certain_a man_n great_a among_o the_o apostle_n the_o last_o &_o the_o least_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o great_a man_n be_v evident_o name_v a_o little_a after_o when_o christ_n say_v to_o s._n peter_n simon_n simon_n behold_v satan_n have_v desire_v to_o sift_v you_o as_o it_o be_v wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n master_n saunder_n ask_v what_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o peter_n to_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n but_o to_o practice_v and_o exercise_v his_o greatness_n over_o they_o for_o every_o one_o that_o confirm_v be_v great_a than_o they_o which_o be_v confirm_v who_o ever_o do_v read_v such_o impudent_a assertion_n peter_n faith_n be_v confirm_v by_o marie_n magdalen_n therefore_o she_o be_v great_a than_o peter_n paul_n be_v confirm_v by_o ananias_n therefore_o he_o be_v great_a than_o paul_n aquila_n &_o priscilla_n confirm_v apollo_n therefore_o they_o be_v great_a than_o he_o to_o conclude_v if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o s._n luk._n 22._o do_v necessary_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v one_o certain_a man_n among_o they_o great_a they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o 9_o of_o luk._n 48._o do_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v one_o lest_o among_o they_o he_o that_o be_v least_o among_o you_o all_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n even_o he_o be_v the_o great_a and_o least_o m._n saunder_n shall_v renew_v his_o difference_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o may_v please_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o contention_n be_v among_o the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a or_o great_a of_o they_o which_o question_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v not_o decide_v if_o m._n sanders_n difference_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o place_n may_v stand_v wherefore_o hitherto_o peter_n have_v find_v no_o supremacy_n and_o much_o less_o the_o pope_n by_o prerogative_n of_o his_o chair_n who_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v in_o peter_n chair_n except_o he_o teach_v peter_n doctrine_n which_o if_o he_o do_v teach_v as_o he_o do_v y_o e_o contrary_a yet_o peter_n authority_n can_v no_o more_o be_v derive_v to_o he_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o moses_n to_o every_o one_o of_o y_z e_z scribes_z &_o pharizee_n w_o c_o do_v sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n he_o cit_v ambrose_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o prelacy_n or_o preferment_n in_o the_o church_n because_o he_o forbid_v contention_n thereabouts_o as_o though_o there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o prelacy_n or_o preferment_n of_o every_o bishop_n over_o his_o church_n but_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n over_o all_o the_o church_n the_o like_a he_o allege_v out_o of_o bede_n which_o speak_v express_o of_o all_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n &_o not_o of_o one_o pope_n over_o all_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o disputation_n be_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n do_v in_o all_o point_n resemble_v as_o much_o as_o it_o possible_a may_v the_o primacy_n of_o christ_n &_o therefore_o he_o that_o deny_v the_o primacy_n among_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v a_o true_a primacy_n in_o his_o kind_n be_v blasphemous_a against_o christ_n himself_o nay_o rather_o he_o that_o communicate_v with_o any_o man_n that_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o he_o only_o shall_v be_v as_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d himself_o the_o primate_n in_o all_o thing_n col._n 1._o 18._o which_o be_v y_fw-fr e_o head_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n be_v find_v a_o manifest_a blasphemer_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ._n but_o that_o they_o with_o c_o excel_v among_o y_o e_o apostles_n &_o their_o successor_n the_o bishop_n may_v be_v humble_a and_o yet_o great_a after_o the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v no_o question_n at_o all_o but_o that_o any_o have_v such_o greatness_n in_o authority_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v cuer_v his_o whole_a church_n be_v the_o thing_n we_o deny_v if_o gregory_n affirm_v that_o peter_n by_o god_n commission_n have_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o be_v grow_v in_o power_n above_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_v see_v he_o be_v so_o never_o to_o the_o open_a manifestation_n of_o antechrist_n which_o succeed_v he_o the_o next_o save_v one_o who_o tyranny_n begin_v to_o increase_v long_o before_o gregory_n time_n yet_o be_v he_o in_o his_o pretend_a primacy_n more_o modest_a than_o any_o that_o follow_v he_o to_o this_o day_n utter_o refuse_v and_o condemn_v as_o profane_v proud_a &_o blasphemous_a against_o christ_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o john_n of_o constantinople_n do_v usurp_v and_o other_o bishop_n will_v have_v give_v to_o he_o and_o whereas_o m._n saunder_n frame_v a_o objection_n of_o our_o part_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v both_o a_o minister_n &_o a_o governor_n therefore_o no_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n can_v be_v a_o governor_n he_o play_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n for_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o servant_n be_v also_o a_o governor_n but_o we_o affirm_v that_o his_o government_n be_v spiritual_a not_o worldly_a unlike_a to_o the_o earthly_a government_n of_o this_o world_n even_o as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o because_o that_o every_o bishop_n &_o shepherd_n be_v a_o governor_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n and_o shepherd_n governor_n of_o they_o all_o other_o than_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o arch_n or_o head_n shepherd_n &_o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n 1._o pet._n 5._o 4._o &_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 25_o m._n saunder_n commend_v y_fw-mi e_z say_v of_o leo_n b._n of_o rome_n to_o anastasius_n b._n of_o thessalonica_n qui_fw-la se_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o that_o know_v he_o seife_n to_o be_v set_v over_o some_o man_n let_v he_o not_o disdain_v to_o have_v some_o man_n prefer_v before_o he_o but_o he_o proceed_v sed_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la quam_fw-la exigit_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipse_fw-la dependat_fw-la but_o such_o obedience_n as_o he_o require_v of_o other_o let_v he_o yield_v himself_o by_o this_o say_n it_o appear_v that_o although_o leo_n take_v much_o upon_o he_o as_o to_o hear_v the_o controversy_n y_fw-fr e_fw-la can_v not_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o metropolitan_o yet_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o equity_n he_o be_v b●●●●d_v to_o yield_v that_o obedience_n to_o other_o which_o he_o require_v of_o other_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o fault_n but_o m._n saunder_n make_v a_o other_o objection_n for_o we_o on_o this_o manner_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n do_v also_o serve_v their_o subject_n in_o conserve_n peace_n keep_v out_o their_o enemy_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o clergy_n must_v be_v altogether_o unlike_a to_o temporal_a governor_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v no_o primacy_n or_o government_n among_o they_o although_o it_o be_v join_v with_o service_n once_o again_o i_o say_v we_o make_v no_o such_o objection_n but_o we_o answer_v the_o anabaptist_n that_o
church_n etc._n etc._n of_o christ_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o call_v prince_n his_o vassal_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o blasphemy_n his_o cannon_n law_n be_v stuff_v full_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v too_o far_o in_o the_o day_n for_o m._n saunder_n to_o make_v we_o think_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o white_a and_o black_a pride_n and_o humility_n gentleness_n and_o cruelty_n holiness_n and_o hypocrisy_n faith_n and_o falsehood_n vice_n and_o virtue_n the_o third_o chapter_n of_o the_o diverse_a sense_n which_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o namely_o about_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n saunder_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o which_o be_v the_o most_o literal_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o they_o to_o contend_v about_o the_o diversity_n of_o sense_n it_o be_v fulke_n to_o take_v uppe_o a_o new_a controversy_n i_o admit_v that_o which_o master_n saunder_n confess_v the_o lyter_n all_o sense_n only_o to_o be_v of_o force_n to_o convince_v the_o adversary_n and_o the_o literal_a sense_n not_o to_o be_v always_o according_a to_o the_o grammatical_a sound_n of_o the_o word_n but_o according_a to_o the_o most_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o speaker_n as_o when_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n ●o_z they_z i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o mean_v not_o material_a key_n of_o iron_n but_o authority_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o key_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o master_n to_o his_o stuard_n but_o not_o as_o key_n of_o a_o city_n be_v deliver_v which_o betoken_v the_o give_n of_o possession_n of_o that_o city_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o which_o receive_v the_o key_n as_o master_n saunder_n say_v for_o that_o be_v no_o part_n of_o christ_n meaning_n to_o resign_v the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n to_o peter_n for_o such_o give_n of_o key_n be_v of_o the_o subject_n to_o their_o superior_a but_o to_o make_v he_o one_o of_o the_o stuarde_n of_o his_o great_a house_n to_o open_v and_o shut_v according_a to_o his_o apoyntment_n otherwise_o only_a christ_n have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n which_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v and_o shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v apocalips_n 3_o verse_n 7._o likewise_o when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n i_o confess_v and_o agree_v with_o master_n saunder_n that_o the_o lyterall_a sense_n be_v not_o thou_o be_v a_o natural_a stone_n but_o thou_o be_v that_o toward_o my_o church_n which_o a_o stone_n be_v toward_o the_o house_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o that_o stone_n but_o so_o that_o peter_n be_v not_o the_o only_a foundation_n nor_o the_o corner_n stone_n which_o be_v only_a christ_n but_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o stone_n of_o the_o foundation_n as_o it_o may_v more_o plain_o appear_v in_o the_o apocalips_n the_o 21._o chapter_n and_o the_o 14._o verse_n furthermore_o i_o confess_v that_o what_o soever_o by_o necessary_a conclusion_n may_v be_v gather_v of_o any_o true_a literal_a sense_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o that_o w_o c_o be_v express_v in_o plain_a word_n as_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o christ_n with_o god_n the_o father_n the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o such_o like_a but_o whereas_o m._n sand._n ioygn_v to_o these_o not_o only_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n which_o be_v not_o certain_o though_o probable_o to_o be_v gather_v but_o also_o transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o purgatory_n against_o which_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v manifest_a i_o will_v not_o admit_v they_o for_o example_n but_o to_o come_v to_o his_o purpose_n he_o find_v in_o the_o ancient_a father_n four_o diverse_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n whereof_o three_o he_o reject_v as_o unperfect_a which_o have_v ancient_a writer_n as_o he_o confess_v for_o their_o author_n the_o last_o he_o have_v no_o ancient_a writer_n to_o defend_v the_o first_o that_o christ_n be_v that_o rock_n on_o who_o the_o church_n be_v build_v which_o augustine_n hold_v the_o second_o that_o every_o disciple_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o rock_n which_o be_v origens_n opinion_n the_o three_o that_o peter_n faith_n or_o confeffion_n be_v the_o rock_n which_o be_v chrysostoms_n judgement_n the_o four_o which_o be_v his_o own_o and_o therefore_o he_o call_v it_o the_o perfect_v sense_n be_v that_o peter_n concern_v his_o office_n in_o god_n church_n through_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v past_a and_o the_o faithful_a confession_n of_o his_o godhead_n which_o be_v present_o make_v and_o the_o power_n of_o feed_v his_o sheep_n which_o then_o be_v to_o come_v be_v this_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v here_o i_o wish_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v that_o the_o papiste_n reject_v three_o sense_n of_o three_o several_a ancient_a writer_n and_o make_v the_o four_o himself_o that_o you_o may_v see_v with_o what_o equity_n they_o exclaim_v against_o we_o if_o upon_o never_o so_o good_a ground_n we_o depart_v from_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o confute_v these_o three_o doctor_n opinion_n as_o unsufficient_a interpretation_n first_o he_o say_v if_o augustine_n sense_n be_v true_a all_o the_o three_o other_o shall_v be_v void_a in_o deed_n his_o own_o sense_n understanding_n peter_n to_o be_v a_o singular_a rock_n more_o than_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v make_v void_a thereby_o as_o it_o be_v false_a but_o the_o other_o two_o may_v stand_v very_o well_o well_o with_o augustine_n meaning_n for_o he_o mean_v not_o christ_n bare_o but_o christ_n who_o peter_n and_o every_o true_a disciple_n of_o faith_n confess_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v the_o word_n thou_o hinder_v this_o sense_n see_v augustine_n understand_v peter_n to_o be_v a_o denominative_a a_o petra_n of_o the_o stone_n nor_o the_o word_n i_o will_v build_v for_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v begunn_v to_o build_v his_o church_n before_o yet_o he_o will_v build_v still_o and_o that_o more_o magnifical_a than_o before_o the_o sense_n of_o origine_fw-la he_o reject_v as_o not_o literal_a upon_o which_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v the_o sense_n of_o chrysostome_n he_o refuse_v say_v the_o faith_n of_o peter_n be_v not_o the_o only_a rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v for_o than_o it_o have_v be_v buylte_n upon_o the_o faith_n of_o john_n baptiste_n before_o this_o time_n a_o pithy_a argument_n as_o though_o there_o be_v any_o more_o than_o one_o faith_n ephesian_n 4._o verse_n 5._o which_o be_v the_o same_o in_o peter_n and_o in_o john_n and_o in_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o same_o i_o say_v in_o kind_n not_o in_o number_n neither_o do_v chrysostome_n mean_a that_o the_o singular_a faith_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o same_o one_o faith_n and_o confession_n embrace_v of_o every_o member_n thereof_o that_o he_o say_v i_o will_v build_v whereas_o he_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o build_v and_o do_v then_o present_o build_v what_o inconvenience_n be_v it_o but_o in_o a_o quarreller_n mind_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o future_a tense_n to_o signify_v the_o great_a amplyfication_n of_o his_o church_n which_o he_o will_v make_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o of_o all_o sense_n master_n saunder_n like_v his_o own_o beast_n asperfect_a and_o contain_v all_o the_o other_o therein_o for_o first_o say_v he_o if_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n than_o christ_n that_o make_v he_o be_v much_o more_o as_o the_o geever_n and_o author_n of_o his_o power_n but_o i_o deny_v that_o christ_n do_v give_v the_o same_o that_o he_o be_v himself_o that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o only_a singular_a foundation_n rock_n and_o corner_n stone_n of_o his_o church_n second_o he_o say_v if_o peter_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o confession_n be_v a_o rock_n than_o his_o confession_n be_v a_o rock_n but_o then_o say_v i_o they_o that_o make_v the_o same_o confession_n be_v as_o much_o a_o rock_n as_o he_o three_o he_o say_v if_o peter_n be_v captain_n disciple_n of_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v be_v a_o rock_n than_o all_o other_o disciple_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o he_o as_o in_o y_z e_z chief_a may_v also_o be_v this_o rock_n who_o have_v think_v peter_n have_v be_v such_o a_o universal_a thing_n to_o contain_v all_o disciple_n in_o he_o do_v not_o this_o contain_v manifest_a blasphemy_n to_o make_v all_o disciple_n contain_v in_o peter_n which_o be_v contain_v only_o in_o christ_n as_o the_o member_n in_o their_o mystirall_n body_n whereof_o he_o only_o be_v chief_a head_n sovereign_a captain_n or_o what_o other_o name_n of_o superiority_n can_v be_v devise_v but_o now_o that_o he_o have_v
make_v such_o a_o monstrous_a jumble_v of_o three_o opinion_n in_o one_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o charge_v master_n jewel_n for_o leave_v the_o most_o literal_a sense_n and_o mingle_v three_o opinion_n of_o these_o four_o in_o one_o as_o though_o his_o sense_n which_o be_v far_a of_o from_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a or_o most_o literal_a sense_n but_o see_v he_o wish_v master_n jewel_n or_o any_o of_o we_o to_o discuss_v the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n particular_o with_o all_o circumstance_n for_o my_o part_n consider_v all_o circumstance_n i_o think_v the_o most_o simple_a and_o plain_a meaning_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o peter_n it_o a_o rock_n or_o stone_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v but_o none_o otherwise_o than_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v ephe_n 2._o and_o 20._o verse_n and_o in_o the_o apocalips_n the_o 21._o chapter_n and_o 14._o verse_n of_o which_o m._n saunder_n also_o confess_v every_o one_o to_o be_v a_o rock_n in_o his_o kind_n but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v the_o five_o circumstance_n by_o which_o master_n saunder_n will_v prove_v peter_n for_o to_o be_v such_o a_o rock_n as_o none_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v but_o he_o the_o first_o christ_n promise_v simon_n before_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v peter_n which_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o be_v the_o rock_n john_n i._o admit_v this_o to_o be_v a_o promise_n &_o not_o a_o imposition_n of_o a_o name_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o fortitude_n &_o constancy_n where_o with_o he_o will_v endue_v he_o this_o prove_v he_o not_o to_o be_v a_o singular_a rock_n the_o second_o he_o be_v name_v peter_n before_o he_o confess_v which_o be_v the_o performance_n of_o the_o promise_n mark_n 3._o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o he_o have_v confess_v christ_n before_o he_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n although_o he_o have_v not_o make_v that_o solemn_a confession_n express_v in_o matthew_n 16._o wherefore_o this_o circumstance_n be_v a_o frivolous_a argument_n and_o his_o brother_n andrew_n which_o first_o bring_v he_o to_o christ_n confess_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n before_o peter_n be_v come_v to_o christ._n the_o third_o when_o he_o have_v confess_v the_o godheade_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o gift_n &_o of_o the_o promise_n christ_n pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o rock_n whereupon_o he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o his_o confession_n but_o all_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o same_o confession_n therefore_o the_o same_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o all_o that_o they_o shall_v every_o one_o be_v a_o rock_n or_o stone_n on_o which_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v the_o four_o christ_n pray_v that_o peter_n faith_n may_v not_o fail_v which_o be_v the_o warrant_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o strong_a confession_n luc._n 22._o christ_n pray_v for_o all_o his_o apostle_n joan._n 17._o the_o special_a prayer_n for_o peter_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o great_a weakness_n when_o he_o be_v leave_v to_o himself_o the_o last_o to_o show_v what_o strength_n peter_n shall_v geve_v to_o his_o brethren_n after_o his_o conversion_n christ_n bid_v he_o feed_v his_o lamb_n whereby_o he_o be_v make_v such_o a_o rock_n whereby_o he_o shall_v stay_v up_o his_o church_n by_o teach_v &_o rule_v y_o e_o faithful_a as_o who_o voice_n the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o hear_v in_o pain_n of_o damnation_n first_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o strength_n or_o confirmation_n which_o he_o shall_v geve_v to_o his_o brethren_n be_v not_o all_o one_o with_o his_o feed_n of_o the_o lamb_n but_o be_v use_v to_o the_o strengthen_n of_o his_o weak_a brethren_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o after_o his_o marvellous_a conversion_n he_o do_v mighty_o confirm_v though_o in_o his_o fall_n he_o be_v show_v to_o be_v the_o weak_a of_o all_o then_o i_o say_v the_o feed_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o he_o have_v no_o prerogative_n of_o authority_n give_v but_o a_o earnest_a charge_n to_o show_v his_o great_a love_n by_o great_a diligence_n in_o his_o office_n so_o that_o hitherto_o peter_n be_v none_o otherwise_o a_o rock_n than_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o four_o chapter_n diverse_a reason_n be_v allege_v to_o prove_v chief_o by_o the_o circumstance_n and_o conference_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o these_o saunder_n word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n have_v this_o literal_a meaning_n upon_o thou_o o_o peter_n be_v first_o make_v a_o rock_n to_o end_n thou_o shall_v stout_o confess_v the_o faith_n and_o so_o confess_v it_o i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n the_o promise_n to_o be_v caell_v peter_n be_v the_o first_o cause_n why_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o he_o the_o protestant_n can_v not_o tell_v which_o be_v the_o first_o literal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o m._n saunder_n in_o the_o chapter_n before_o reject_v the_o interpretation_n of_o three_o of_o the_o fulke_n great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n origen_n augustine_n and_o chrysostom_n not_o only_o be_v bind_v in_o equity_n to_o geve_v we_o the_o same_o liberty_n which_o he_o take_v himself_o but_o also_o to_o confess_v that_o these_o three_o principal_a doctor_n follow_v other_o sense_n than_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o which_o he_o &_o all_o other_o papist_n make_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n namely_o of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n when_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o peter_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n whereupon_o christ_n will_v build_v his_o church_n and_o therefore_o will_v never_o have_v subscribe_v to_o his_o book_n which_o he_o institute_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n but_o now_o to_o the_o argument_n of_o this_o chapter_n chrysostomis_n cite_v to_o prove_v that_o where_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n thou_o be_v simon_n the_o son_n of_o jona_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cepha_n which_o be_v by_o interpretation_n peter_n a_o new_a name_n be_v promise_v to_o simon_n in_o joan._n hom._n 18._o honorifice_fw-la etc._n etc._n christ_n do_v forespeak_v honourable_o of_o he_o for_o the_o certain_a foretell_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v the_o work_n only_o of_o the_o immortal_a god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o foretell_v at_o this_o first_o meeting_n all_o thing_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v afterward_o to_o he_o for_o he_o do_v not_o call_v he_o peter_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n but_o he_o say_v thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n for_o that_o be_v both_o of_o more_o power_n and_o also_o of_o more_o authority_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o sentence_n but_o that_o we_o may_v willing_o admit_v peter_n be_v not_o yet_o instruct_v that_o he_o may_v be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o be_v afterward_o and_o that_o chrysostom_n judge_v no_o singular_a thing_n to_o be_v grant_v by_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n mat._n 16._o to_o peter_n appeareth_z by_o his_o word_n in_o euang._n joann_n praef._n where_o he_o apply_v the_o same_o to_o ihon._n tonitrui_fw-la enim_fw-la filius_fw-la est_fw-la christo_fw-la dilectissimus_fw-la columna_fw-la omnium_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o orbe_fw-la sunt_fw-la ceclesiarum_fw-la qui_fw-la caeli_fw-la clave_n habet_fw-la for_o the_o son_n of_o thunder_n be_v most_o belove_a of_o christ_n be_v a_o pillar_n of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n which_o have_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n neither_o do_v cyrillus_n who_o he_o cit_v make_v any_o thing_n for_o his_o purpose_n in_o joan._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 12._o nec_fw-la simon_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o tell_v afore_o hand_n that_o his_o name_n be_v peter_n and_o not_o now_o simon_n by_o the_o very_a word_n signify_v that_o he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n on_o he_o as_o on_o a_o rock_n and_o most_o sure_a stone_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o cyrillus_n but_o that_o he_o mean_v not_o his_o person_n but_o his_o faith_n he_o show_v manifest_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la lib._n 4._o speak_v upon_o the_o text_n of_o math._n 16._o the_o ground_n of_o m._n sanders_n book_n peiram_n opinor_fw-la per_fw-la agnominationem_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la inconcussam_fw-la &_o firmissimam_fw-la discipuli_fw-la fidem_fw-la vocavit_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la it_o a_o firmata_fw-la &_o fundata_fw-la esset_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la laberetur_fw-la i_o think_v he_o call_v a_o rock_n by_o denomination_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o most_o unmoveable_a and_o steadfast_a
the_o late_a bishop_n usurp_v and_o practise_v under_o pretence_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n his_o word_n eat_v cite_v in_o ann._n ass_n ser._n 3._o super_fw-la hoc_fw-la saxum_fw-la etc._n etc._n upon_o this_o stone_n this_o soundness_n and_o strength_n i_o will_v build_v a_o everlasting_a temple_n and_o the_o height_n of_o my_o church_n which_o be_v to_o reach_v to_o heaven_n shall_v rise_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o rock_n a_o great_a extol_n of_o peter_n usual_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o yet_o no_o more_o be_v say_v of_o he_o then_o may_v be_v true_o faide_v upon_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o 6._o reason_n be_v utter_v by_o augustine_n ep._n 165._o petro_n totin_v ecclesiae_fw-la figuram_fw-la etc._n etc._n our_o lord_n say_v to_o peter_n bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o again_o in_o joan_n tr._n 124._o ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n peter_n the_o apostle_n by_o a_o generality_n that_o be_v figure_v do_v bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o apostleship_n here_o he_o make_v much_o ado_n about_o his_o primacy_n by_o reason_n whereof_o he_o bear_v the_o figure_n of_o all_o the_o church_n willing_a to_o infer_v that_o because_o he_o be_v primate_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o primacy_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n therefore_o he_o be_v sovereign_a ruler_n and_o general_a officer_n of_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o every_o one_o which_o be_v make_v a_o attorney_n or_o proxei_n to_o receive_v a_o thing_n for_o a_o whole_a commonalty_n be_v thereby_o make_v general_a ruler_n of_o all_o that_o commonalty_n the_o papist_n themselves_o in_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n discharge_v we_o of_o this_o conclusion_n where_o they_o agree_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antiochia_n which_o cit_v augustine_n to_o witness_v that_o peter_n receive_v the_o key_n as_o minister_v of_o the_o church_n and_o augustine_n write_v de_n ago_o christ._n cap._n 30_o non_fw-la enim_fw-la siae_fw-la causa_fw-la inter_fw-la omnes_fw-la apostolos_fw-la huius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la personam_fw-la sustinet_fw-la petrus_n huic_fw-la enim_fw-la ecclesie_n clavis_fw-la regni_fw-la caelorum_fw-la datae_fw-la sunt_fw-la et_fw-la cum_fw-la ei_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la di●itur_fw-la a●nas_fw-la i_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la for_o not_o without_o cause_n among_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n sustain_v the_o person_n of_o this_o catholic_a church_n for_o to_o this_o church_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v say_v to_o all_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n by_o this_o sentence_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o christ_n after_o augustine_n mind_n prefer_v not_o peter_n in_o power_n before_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o to_o receive_v equal_a power_n with_o the_o rest_n he_o make_v he_o as_o it_o be_v the_o attornye_n of_o the_o rest_n so_o that_o all_o these_o reason_n due_o consider_v the_o say_n of_o the_o doctor_n which_o affirm_v peter_n to_o be_v a_o rock_n or_o stone_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v do_v not_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v a_o only_a foundation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o be_v one_o and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o twelve_o stone_n whereon_o the_o church_n be_v found_v and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n and_o doctrine_n not_o of_o his_o person_n as_o he_o wasa_fw-mi mortal_a man_n the_o seven_o chapter_n the_o authority_n allege_v by_o m._n iowell_o to_o prove_v that_o saunder_n peter_n be_v not_o this_o rock_n prove_v against_o himself_o that_o peter_n be_v this_o rock_n although_o they_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o other_o kind_n of_o rock_n also_o beside_o he_o which_o thing_n we_o deny_v not_o the_o first_o authority_n be_v gregorius_n nyssenus_n in_o loc_n vet_z test_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v fulke_n build_v my_o church_n he_o mean_v the_o confession_n of_o christ._n for_o he_o have_v say_v before_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n m._n s._n repli_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v not_o this_o rock_n nor_o that_o christ_n be_v this_o rock_n but_o that_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n which_o he_o grant_v and_o therefore_o peter_n much_o rather_o must_v be_v the_o rock_n for_o his_o confession_n which_o come_v from_o his_o soul_n and_o heart_n as_o from_o a_o fountain_n or_o springe_n be_v great_a than_o the_o act_n of_o confession_n first_o i_o deny_v his_o argument_n because_o peter_n confession_n come_v neither_o from_o his_o soul_n nor_o hart_n but_o from_o god_n which_o reveal_v the_o truth_n unto_o he_o as_o christ_n say_v flesh_n and_o blood_n etc._n etc._n second_o i_o say_v gregory_n mean_v by_o peter_n confession_n he_o which_o peter_n confess_v namely_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o only_a rock_n of_o the_o church_n whereon_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v build_v as_o his_o word_n do_v sound_o for_o he_o have_v say_v before_o thou_o be_v christ_n etc._n etc._n but_o m._n saunder_n reason_v like_o a_o learned_a clerk_n find_v fault_n with_o m._n jewel_n argument_n compare_v it_o to_o this_o there_o come_v eloquence_n from_o a_o man_n but_o he_o be_v not_o eloquent_a peter_n confession_n be_v the_o rock_n therefore_o peter_n be_v not_o the_o rock_n will_v a_o man_n think_v that_o a_o doctor_n in_o divitie_n shall_v either_o be_v so_o ignorant_a in_o the_o art_n of_o reason_v or_o so_o impudent_a in_o pervert_v a_o good_a reason_n that_o a_o very_a child_n may_v reprove_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o i_o appeal_v to_o logician_n whether_o this_o reason_n of_o m._n jewel_n the_o rock_n come_v from_o peter_n by_o confession_n ergo_fw-la peter_n be_v not_o the_o rock_n be_v like_o this_o argument_n eloquence_n come_v from_o cicero_n therefore_o cicero_n be_v not_o eloquence_n and_o not_o as_o m._n sand._n infer_v ergo_fw-la cicero_n be_v not_o eloquent_a but_o he_o have_v another_o example_n a_o man_n oration_n be_v eloquent_a therefore_o the_o man_n himself_o be_v eloquent_a so_o peter_n confession_n be_v the_o rock_n therefore_o peter_n h●●selfe_n be_v the_o rock_n i_o deny_v the_o resemblance_n for_o there_o be_v resemble_v the_o adiective_n in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o substantive_a in_o the_o other_o but_o thus_o he_o shall_v compare_v they_o tuilye_n defence_n of_o mylo_n be_v a_o eloquent_a oration_n therefore_o tully_n be_v a_o eloquent_a oration_n which_o reason_v be_v no_o more_o absurd_a than_o this_o of_o m._n sand._n peter_n confession_n be_v the_o rock_n therefore_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n contrariwise_o you_o may_v reason_n peter_n confession_n be_v the_o rock_n therefore_o peter_n be_v rockey_n or_o stony_a the_o second_o authority_n be_v hilary_n haec_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v that_o only_o bless_a rock_n of_o faith_n that_o peter_n confess_v with_o his_o mouth_n m._n saunder_n cavele_v that_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v upon_o the_o word_n say_v to_o peter_n but_o up●on_o the_o word_n speak_v by_o peter_n but_o beside_o that_o the_o whole_a context_n of_o the_o place_n be_v against_o he_o both_o in_o that_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la and_o also_o lib._n 6._o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la confessionis_fw-la petram_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la edifi●ato_fw-la est_fw-la upon_o this_o rock_n of_o confession_n be_v the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n which_o m._n sand._n will_v avoid_v by_o bring_v in_o of_o two_o rock_n christ_n &_o peter_n the_o particle_n exclusive_a shut_v he_o clean_o out_o of_o the_o door_n for_o hilary_n say_v not_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o rock_n but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a rock_n therefore_o this_o be_v but_o one_o rock_n and_o one_o building_n and_o not_o as_o m._n sand._n say_v two_o rock_n and_o two_o building_n for_o aswell_o he_o may_v say_v two_o church_n now_o where_o hilary_n upon_o matthew_n acknowledge_v peter_n to_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v answer_v before_o that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o foundation_n speak_v of_o apoc._n 21._o in_o a_o far_a other_o meaning_n than_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a rock_n the_o 3._o authority_n be_v cyrillus_n dial_n 4._o de_fw-fr trini_z the_o rock_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o strong_a &_o assure_a faith_n of_o the_o disciple_n this_o say_v m._n s._n be_v that_o i_o will_v have_v for_o this_o disciple_n be_v s._n peter_n and_o the_o rock_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o s._n peter_n faith_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o christ._n nay_o rather_o the_o rock_n be_v nothing_o but_o s._n peter_n faith_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o his_o
of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o no_o ordinary_a authority_n 17_o after_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n peter_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n first_o teach_v the_o faith_n chrysostome_n and_o cyrill_n say_v he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n who_o all_o stand_v up_o together_o with_o he_o although_o one_o speak_v to_o avoid_v confusion_n when_o the_o apology_n be_v make_v to_o answer_v the_o slanderous_a scoffer_n but_o before_o that_o they_o teach_v every_o one_o a_o like_a 18_o the_o multitude_n convert_v say_v to_o peter_n and_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n but_o to_o peter_n by_o name_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v if_o this_o prove_v any_o thing_n it_o prove_v the_o equallitie_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o have_v hear_v one_o man_n preach_v they_o demand_v not_o of_o he_o alone_o but_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n with_o he_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v 19_o peter_n make_v answer_v for_o all_o that_o they_o shall_v repent_v &_o be_v baptize_v it_o be_v good_a reason_n see_v he_o make_v the_o apology_n for_o all_o 20_o peter_n do_v the_o first_o miracle_n after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o heal_v the_o lame_v foot_n show_v mystical_o that_o he_o be_v the_o rock_n to_o establish_v the_o foot_n of_o other_o i_o answer_v john_n heal_v he_o as_o much_o as_o peter_n by_o peter_n own_o confession_n act._n 3._o 12._o and_o the_o lame_a man_n acknowledge_v the_o benefit_n to_o be_v receive_v equal_o from_o both_o in_o hold_v peter_n and_o john_n 21_o peter_n confess_v christ_n first_o not_o only_o before_o private_a man_n but_o at_o the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n act._n 4._o it_o be_v false_a that_o peter_n confess_v christ_n first_o before_o private_a man_n and_o at_o the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n he_o confess_v equal_o with_o ihon._n 22_o peter_n alone_o give_v sentence_n with_o fullness_n of_o power_n upon_o ananias_n and_o saphyra_n not_o by_o ordinary_a power_n but_o by_o special_a revelation_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whatsoever_o gregory_n a_o partial_a judge_n in_o this_o case_n do_v gather_v 23_o peter_n be_v so_o famous_a above_o the_o rest_n that_o his_o shadow_n be_v seek_v to_o heal_v the_o disease_a this_o be_v a_o singular_a and_o personal_a gift_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o therefore_o it_o pertain_v nothing_o to_o he_o 24_o peter_n do_v excommunicate_a &_o enjoin_v penance_n to_o simon_n magus_n the_o first_o heretic_n peter_n denounce_v god_n judgement_n against_o he_o but_o not_o by_o way_n of_o excommunication_n &_o yet_o the_o argument_n be_v naught_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v though_o the_o antecedent_n be_v grant_v 25_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o that_o raise_v a_o dead_a body_n to_o life_n namely_o tabytha_n after_o christ_n ascension_n this_o be_v neither_o prove_v to_o be_v true_a neither_o if_o it_o be_v shall_v peter_n thereby_o have_v great_a authority_n than_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n which_o likewise_o raise_v the_o dead_a and_o peradventure_o before_o peter_n although_o s._n luke_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o they_o 26_o peter_n have_v first_o by_o vision_n that_o the_o gentile_n be_v call_v to_o believe_v in_o christ._n this_o be_v false_a for_o paul_n have_v that_o in_o vision_n before_o he_o act._n 9_o &_o 26._o 17._o 27_o god_n choose_v that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v first_o of_o all_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o peter_n mouth_n and_o shall_v belecue_v act_n 15._o this_o be_v false_a for_o peter_n say_v not_o first_o of_o all_o but_o of_o old_a tyme._n and_o the_o eunuch_n of_o aethiopia_n be_v baptize_v by_o philippe_n before_o cornclius_n of_o peter_n 28_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o peter_n by_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o so_o earnest_o make_v for_o any_o other_o apostle_n that_o we_o read_v of_o their_o earnest_a prayer_n for_o peter_n be_v set_v forth_o to_o show_v that_o god_n at_o their_o prayer_n deliver_v peter_n not_o that_o peter_n be_v thereby_o show_v to_o be_v great_a in_o authority_n 29_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o apostle_n to_o fitch_v a_o solution_n from_o peter_n act._n 15._o as_o theodoret_n note_v but_o s._n luke_n note_v that_o they_o come_v to_o all_o the_o aposte_n and_o elder_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o not_o to_o peter_n only_o nor_o for_o his_o solution_n but_o for_o the_o solution_n of_o the_o council_n 30_o in_o the_o council_n act._n 15._o peter_n do_v not_o only_o speak_v first_o but_o also_o give_v the_o determinate_a sentence_n both_o the_o part_n of_o this_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o saint_n luke_n testify_v there_o be_v great_a disputation_n before_o saint_n peter_n speak_v also_o sayncte_n james_n as_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n give_v the_o definitive_a sentence_n accord_v to_o who_o word_n the_o synodical_a epistle_n be_v write_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n at_o jerusalem_n 31_o saint_n paul_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n as_o chrysostome_n say_v because_o he_o be_v primus_fw-la first_fw-mi or_o chief_a but_o saint_n paul_n himself_o affirm_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o diverse_a other_o that_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o peter_n and_o the_o high_a apostle_n galathian_o 2._o 8._o 2._o corinthian_n 12._o 11._o 32_o peter_n be_v either_o alone_a or_o first_o &_o chief_a in_o the_o great_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o preach_n unto_o the_o gentile_n in_o which_o peter_n be_v neither_o alone_a nor_o first_o nor_o chief_a but_o paul_n chief_a gal._n 2._o 33_o peter_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o occupy_v with_o his_o chair_n the_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o roman_a province_n and_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o there_o vanquish_v simon_n magus_n the_o head_n of_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n all_o this_o be_v uncerteyne_a being_n not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o those_o story_n which_o report_v it_o convince_v by_o scripture_n to_o be_v false_a in_o diverse_a circumstance_n 34_o peter_n chair_n and_o succession_n have_v be_v acknowledge_v of_o all_o ancient_a father_n etc._n etc._n although_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n appoint_v for_o the_o scate_v of_o antechrist_n have_v of_o old_a be_v very_o ambitious_a yet_o it_o be_v a_o fable_n that_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o ancient_a father_n to_o have_v the_o authority_n which_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o have_v claim_v for_o irenaeus_n rebuke_v victor_n for_o usurp_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n in_o council_n withstand_v innocentius_n zozimus_n bonifacius_n and_o caebastinus_n allege_v for_o their_o authority_n a_o counterfeit_n decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nic●_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o treatise_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o counsel_n of_o chalcedon_n of_o constantinople_n the_o 5._o etc._n etc._n which_o withstand_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n in_o such_o case_n as_o he_o pretend_v prerogative_n to_o conclude_v neither_o any_o one_o nor_o altogether_o of_o these_o 34._o reason_n prove_v peter_n to_o be_v great_a in_o authority_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o much_o less_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v great_a than_o bishop_n of_o other_o seat_n the_o ten_o chapter_n that_o the_o apostle_n beside_o the_o prerogative_n of_o their_o apostleship_n saunder_n have_v also_o the_o authority_n to_o be_v particular_a bishop_n which_o thing_n their_o name_n also_o do_v signify_v in_o the_o old_a time_n although_o the_o apostle_n have_v all_o such_o authority_n as_o every_o fulke_n particular_a bishop_n have_v yet_o have_v they_o not_o two_o office_n but_o one_o apostleship_n no_o more_o than_o a_o king_n although_o he_o have_v all_o authority_n that_o every_o constable_n have_v be_v thereby_o both_o a_o king_n and_o a_o constable_n but_o a_o king_n only_o neither_o do_v their_o stay_n or_o as_o he_o call_v it_o residence_n in_o some_o particular_a city_n prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n either_o be_v or_o may_v be_v bishop_n that_o be_v geve_v over_o their_o general_o charge_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o particular_a or_o still_o retain_v their_o general_a charge_n to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n any_o long_o then_o until_o the_o church_n be_v perfect_o gather_v where_o they_o remain_v for_o although_o the_o holy_a ghost_n distinguish_v their_o universal_a charge_n into_o several_a part_n to_o avoid_v confusion_n as_o in_o make_v peter_n chief_a apostle_n of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o paul_n of_o the_o gentile_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o thereby_o make_v bishop_n and_o although_o the_o consent_n of_o writer_n be_v that_o james_n be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o follow_v the_o course_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v hold_v that_o jamesby_n decree_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v appoint_v to_o stay_v there_o not_o as_o a_o
bishop_n but_o as_o a_o apostle_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o not_o only_o out_o of_o all_o jury_n but_o out_o of_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n come_v thither_o ordinary_o to_o worship_n of_o s._n peter_n sit_v at_o antioch_n as_o bishop_n we_o find_v nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o less_o of_o his_o remove_n to_o rome_n but_o we_o find_v that_o when_o peter_n come_v to_o antioch_n paul_n withstand_v he_o to_o his_o face_n and_o reprove_v he_o open_o which_o he_o may_v not_o well_o have_v do_v if_o peter_n have_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o in_o his_o own_o see_v as_o m._n saunder_n do_v fantasy_n where_o he_o allege_v the_o text_n &_o episcopatum_fw-la eius_fw-la accipiat_fw-la alter_fw-la and_o let_v a_o other_o take_v his_o bishopric_n to_o prove_v that_o judas_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n be_v bishop_n it_o be_v too_o childish_a &_o fond_a a_o argument_n see_v the_o greek_a word_n which_o s._n luke_n use_v &_o the_o hebrew_n word_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v signify_v general_o a_o charge_n or_o office_n and_o not_o such_o a_o particular_a office_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o now_o we_o speak_v of_o he_o cit_v far_a theodorete_n in_o 3._o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n to_o prove_v y_z t_o the_o name_n of_o a_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v signify_v such_o a_o bishop_n but_o how_o great_o theodoret_n be_v deceive_v appear_v by_o this_o that_o he_o cit_v for_o proof_n philip._n 2._o epaphroditus_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippensians_n because_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o he_o epaphroditus_n your_o apostle_n and_o my_o helper_n whereas_o he_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v their_o messenger_n use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o general_a signification_n for_o a_o messenger_n and_o not_o for_o the_o name_n of_o such_o a_o officer_n as_o a_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n he_o name_v also_o titus_n and_o timotheus_n which_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v never_o call_v apostle_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n at_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o true_a apostle_n of_o christ_n immediate_a send_v and_o not_o bishop_n ordain_v by_o man_n and_o whereas_o hierome_n say_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o mean_v manifest_o in_o authority_n within_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o not_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v bishop_n likewise_o where_o augustine_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v make_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o rather_o prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v no_o bishop_n for_o than_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v bishop_n he_o shall_v say_v bishop_n be_v make_v in_o steed_n of_o bishop_n the_o last_o reason_n be_v that_o if_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n have_v not_o be_v distinct_a in_o the_o apostle_n from_o their_o apostleship_n that_o office_n will_v have_v cease_v with_o the_o apostleship_n for_o the_o whole_a be_v take_v away_o no_o part_n can_v remain_v except_o it_o have_v a_o other_o ground_n to_o stand_v in_o beside_o the_o apostleship_n as_o the_o bishoppe_o power_n have_v in_o deed_n if_o the_o apostleship_n have_v cease_v before_o bishop_n have_v be_v ordain_v bishoplike_a power_n will_v have_v cease_v with_o it_o but_o see_v the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n and_o elder_n in_o every_o congregation_n to_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n the_o bishop_n office_n have_v not_o cease_v though_o the_o office_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v expire_v wherefore_o see_v neither_o by_o scripture_n reason_n nor_o doctor_n this_o distinction_n of_o office_n in_o the_o apostle_n can_v be_v prove_v when_o peter_n be_v call_v head_n prince_n chief_a first_o capteyne_v of_o the_o apostle_n by_o cyrill_n or_o any_o ancient_a writer_n we_o must_v understande_v as_o ambrose_n teach_v a_o primacy_n of_o confession_n or_o faith_n not_o of_o honour_n or_o degree_n de_fw-fr incar_n dom_n cap._n 4._o the_o 11._o chapter_n how_o far_a s._n peter_n do_v either_o excellent_a or_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o saunder_n apostle_n in_o their_o apostolic_a office_n where_o in_o diverse_a objection_n be_v answer_v which_o seem_v to_o make_v against_o s._n peter_n supremacy_n but_o that_o necessity_n enforce_v he_o m._n saunder_n think_v fulke_n it_o sin_n of_o curiosity_n to_o inquire_v of_o that_o equality_n or_o inequality_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o as_o it_o shall_v suffice_v we_o to_o follow_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n practise_v in_o our_o time_n as_o though_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o any_o time_n do_v ever_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n although_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v of_o long_a time_n so_o take_v he_o he_o think_v it_o out_o of_o contronersie_n that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n as_o s._n matthew_n say_v primus_fw-la the_o first_o simon_n which_o be_v call_v peter_n and_o he_o be_v not_o content_a that_o he_o be_v first_o in_o the_o order_n of_o number_v but_o he_o will_v have_v he_o first_o in_o dignity_n because_o he_o be_v always_o name_v first_o but_o that_o be_v nether_a true_a nor_o a_o good_a reason_n if_o it_o be_v true_a because_o he_o be_v name_v first_o therefore_o he_o be_v of_o great_a dignity_n but_o gal._n 2._o 9_o james_n and_o cephas_n &_o john_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v pillar_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o paul_n equal_a with_o they_o although_o if_o we_o grant_v great_a dignity_n to_o peter_n yet_o thereupon_o do_v not_o follow_v great_a authority_n for_o these_o three_o apostle_n last_o name_v be_v of_o great_a dignity_n among_o the_o apostle_n yet_o not_o of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o rest_n and_o although_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o word_n primus_fw-la have_v derive_v the_o name_n of_o primatus_fw-la or_o primacy_n yet_o have_v they_o also_o express_v wherein_o this_o primacy_n do_v consist_v namely_o not_o in_o authority_n but_o in_o order_n nether_a do_v those_o name_n prince_n chief_a head_n top_n guide_n mouth_n great_a of_o the_o apostle_n use_v by_o some_o of_o they_o signify_v his_o authority_n over_o they_o but_o his_o dignity_n amongst_o they_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v he_o wherein_o peter_n be_v chief_a he_o answer_v ●●●●_o question_n be_v curious_a for_o in_o y_z e_z nature_n &_o order_n of_o the_o apostleship_n every_o apostle_n be_v equal_a with_o all_o his_o fellow_n &_o so_o be_v every_o bishop_n priest_n king_n duke_z knight_n with_o every_o one_o of_o his_o degree_n if_o this_o be_v as_o he_o say_v than_o be_v peter_n chief_a nether_a as_o apostle_n nor_o bishop_n but_o there_o may_v be_v another_o thing_n say_v he_o coincident_a to_o some_o degree_n of_o man_n not_o necessary_a for_o the_o be_v but_o for_o their_o well_o be_v one_o therefore_o be_v set_v over_o the_o apostle_n for_o unity_n sake_n and_o to_o avoid_v schism_n as_o cyprian_a &_o hierom_n write_v in_o place_n before_o cite_v this_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o not_o of_o authority_n for_o among_o man_n of_o equal_a authority_n as_o he_o confess_v the_o apostle_n be_v one_o may_v be_v choose_v as_o the_o precedent_n or_o primate_n to_o avoid_v confusion_n the_o austerity_n remain_v equal_a to_o every_o one_o but_o one_o can_v not_o be_v prefer_v in_o authority_n to_o remain_v still_o equal_a with_o his_o fellow_n in_o authority_n but_o whereas_o optatus_n lib._n 2._o the_o schism_n don._n &_o leo_fw-la ad_fw-la a●astas_n ep._n 82._o be_v cite_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o same_o primacy_n which_o peter_n some_o time_n but_o yet_o not_o always_o have_v among_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v retain_v in_o succession_n of_o his_o chair_n to_o maintain_v unity_n among_o all_o man_n it_o have_v no_o ground_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o yet_o those_o good_a man_n be_v far_o from_o imagine_v such_o a_o absolute_a power_n of_o peter_n successor_n as_o m._n saunder_n defend_v in_o the_o pope_n although_o some_o time_n he_o do_v handle_v it_o so_o nice_o as_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o nothing_o wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n where_o i_o say_v that_o peter_n have_v not_o always_o the_o primacy_n of_o order_n among_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v prove_v both_o by_o the_o 15._o of_o the_o act_n where_o james_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n &_o gal._n 2._o not_o only_a where_o james_n be_v name_v before_o peter_n but_o also_o where_o peter_n abstayn_v and_o separate_v himself_o after_o certain_a come_v from_o james_n fear_v they_o of_o the_o circumcifion_n leave_v he_o shall_v have_v be_v evil_o think_v of_o as_o he_o be_v before_o for_o keep_v company_n with_o cornelius_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o m._n saunder_n will_v add_v another_o truth_n
same_o and_o in_o order_n and_o office_n he_o confess_v that_o all_o byshopp_n of_o the_o world_n be_v equal_a as_o hierome_n say_v ad_fw-la euagrium_n and_o cyprian_a de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccles●e_fw-la but_o not_o in_o authority_n but_o see_v he_o rehearse_v the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n imperfect_o i_o will_v set_v it_o down_o at_o large_a that_o you_o may_v see_v whether_o it_o will_v bear_v his_o distinction_n he_o write_v against_o a_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o which_o the_o deacon_n be_v prefer_v aboove_o the_o priest_n who_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o byshoppe_n except_o only_o in_o ordain_v quid_fw-la enim_fw-la facit_fw-la exempta_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la episcopus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o what_o do_v a_o bishop_n except_v ordination_n which_o a_o priest_n or_o elder_n do_v not_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v think_v that_o there_o be_v one_o church_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o a_o other_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n both_o france_n and_o britayn_v &_o africa_n and_o persia_n and_o the_o east_n and_o india_n &_o all_o barbarous_a nation_n worship_v one_o christ_n observe_v one_o rule_n of_o truth_n if_o authority_n be_v seek_v the_o world_n be_v great_a than_o a_o city_n wheresoever_o a_o bishop_n be_v either_o at_o rome_n or_o at_o eugubium_n or_o at_o constantinople_n or_o at_o rhegium_n or_o at_o alexandria_n or_o at_o tunis_n he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o worthiness_n &_o of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n power_n of_o riches_n &_o baseness_n of_o poverty_n make_v not_o the_o bishop_n high_o or_o inferior_a but_o they_o be_v all_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o equality_n in_o order_n &_o office_n &_o not_o in_o authority_n he_o do_v in_o a_o other_o place_n show_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o every_o priest_n be_v equal_a with_o every_o bishop_n by_o god_n disposition_n &_o that_o the_o excel_v of_o one_o bishop_n above_o other_o priest_n come_v only_o by_o custom_n in_o titum_fw-la cap._n 1._o sieut_n ergo_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la sciunt_fw-la se_fw-la ex_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la ei_fw-la qui_fw-la sibi_fw-la praepositus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la esse_fw-la subiectos_fw-la it_o a_o episcopi_fw-la noverint_fw-la se_fw-la magis_fw-la consuctudine_fw-la quam_fw-la dispositionis_fw-la dominicae_fw-la veritate_fw-la presbyteris_fw-la esse_fw-la maieres_fw-la therefore_o as_o priest_n do_v know_v that_o by_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o that_o be_v set_v over_o they_o so_o let_v bishop_n know_v that_o they_o be_v great_a than_o priest_n rather_o by_o custom_n then_o by_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n appointment_n if_o the_o authority_n then_o &_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n depend_v upon_o custon_n &_o not_o upon_o god_n appointment_n peter_n be_v not_o by_o our_o lord_n appointment_n prefer_v in_o bishoplik_a authority_n before_o the_o rest_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o apostles_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o other_o bishop_n &_o priest_n but_o only_o by_o custom_n as_o hierom_n say_v s._n cyprian_n word_n also_o infer_v the_o same_o episcopatus_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la cvius_fw-la à_fw-la singulis_fw-la in_o solidum_fw-la pars_fw-la tenetur_fw-la the_o bishop_n office_n be_v one_o whereof_o every_o man_n do_v partake_v the_o bishop_n office_n whole_o now_o if_o authority_n &_o jurisdiction_n do_v pertain_v to_o the_o bishop_n office_n every_o bishop_n have_v it_o whole_o as_o to_o follow_v m._n sanders_n example_n whatsoever_o be_v incident_a to_o the_o nature_n or_o kind_n of_o a_o man_n be_v equal_o in_o every_o man_n but_o now_o the_o great_a matter_n rest_v to_o prove_v how_o s._n peter_n have_v more_o commit_v to_o his_o charge_n then_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o prove_v by_o this_o reason_n peter_n love_v christ_n more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o give_v he_o great_a authority_n in_o feed_v his_o sheep_n then_o to_o the_o rest_n but_o i_o deny_v the_o argument_n for_o peter_n love_v christ_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n because_o christ_n have_v forgive_v he_o great_a sin●es_n then_o to_o the_o rest_n luc._n 7._o 47._o in_o consideration_n whereof_o he_o require_v great_a diligence_n in_o do_v his_o office_n but_o give_v he_o not_o a_o great_a charge_n or_o authority_n now_o where_o m._n saunder_n reason_v that_o peter_n love_v christ_n most_o because_o christ_n first_o love_v he_o most_o and_o christ_n love_v he_o most_o because_o he_o will_v make_v he_o governor_n of_o his_o church_n it_o be_v a_o shameful_a petition_n or_o beg_v of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o question_n for_o the_o near_a cause_n of_o peter_n great_a love_n be_v the_o great_a mercy_n which_o he_o find_v which_o mercy_n proceed_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n as_o the_o first_o &_o infinite_a cause_n can_v have_v no_o high_o superior_a or_o former_a cause_n but_o peter_n in_o respect_n of_o great_a love_n show_v to_o he_o in_o that_o great_a sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o be_v bind_v to_o show_v great_a love_n towards_o christ_n which_o he_o require_v to_o be_v show_v in_o feed_v his_o sheep_n yet_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o great_a authority_n be_v give_v he_o or_o that_o he_o do_v feed_v more_o than_o all_o man_n for_o s._n paul_n say_v true_o of_o himself_o i_o have_v labour_v more_o than_o they_o all_o 1._o cor._n 15._o 10._o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o peter_n as_o a_o man_n be_v not_o equal_a with_o christ_n in_o the_o effect_n of_o excellent_a love_n which_o be_v in_o he_o in_o comparable_a and_o whereas_o m._n saunder_n talk_v so_o much_o of_o his_o commission_n of_o feed_v i_o say_v these_o word_n feed_v my_o sheep_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o word_n of_o a_o new_a commission_n but_o word_n of_o exhortation_n that_o he_o show_v exceed_v diligence_n in_o the_o commission_n equal_o deliver_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o joan._n 20_o 21._o but_o the_o ancient_a father_n expound_v it_o so_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o singular_a commission_n to_o peter_n it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o diverse_a of_o the_o ancient_a father_n otherwise_o godly_a and_o learned_a be_v deceive_v in_o opinion_n of_o peter_n prerogative_n which_o appear_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o be_v challenge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o show_n of_o some_o benefit_n of_o unitye_n to_o the_o church_n so_o long_o as_o the_o empire_n continue_v at_o rome_n &_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o ●●ie_n retain_v the_o substance_n of_o catholic_a religion_n yet_o do_v they_o never_o imagine_v that_o such_o blasphemous_a &_o tyrannical_a authority_n yea_o such_o false_a &_o heretical_a doctrine_n as_o afterward_o be_v maintain_v under_o the_o pretence_n of_o that_o prerogative_n shall_v or_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v defend_v thereby_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o m._n saunder_n can_v say_v out_o of_o the_o aun●ient_a writer_n august_n in_o hom._n de_fw-fr past_a cap._n 13._o write_v dominus_fw-la etc._n etc._n our_o lord_n have_v commend_v unity_n in_o peter_n himself_o there_o be_v many_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v say_v to_o one_o feed_v my_o sheep_n god_n forbid_v there_o shall_v now_o lack_v good_a pastor_n but_o all_o good_a pastor_n be_v in_o one_o they_o be_v one_o this_o make_v nothing_o for_o peter_n authority_n over_o the_o rest_n but_o only_o the_o author_n suppose_v the_o unity_n of_o all_o pastor_n to_o be_v allegorical_o signify_v in_o that_o christ_n speak_v that_o to_o one_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o good_a shepherd_n namely_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o again_o the_o sanct_n hom_n 24_o in_o uno_fw-la petro_n etc._n etc._n the_o unity_n of_o all_o pastor_n be_v figure_v in_o one_o peter_n so_o may_v it_o well_o be_v without_o give_v peter_n authority_n over_o all_o pastor_n chrysostom_n be_v the_o next_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la who_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v ask_v whether_o peter_n love_v he_o not_o to_o teach_v we_o y_o t_o peter_n love_v he_o but_o to_o inform_v we_o quanti_fw-la sibi_fw-la curae_fw-la sit_fw-la gregis_fw-la huius_fw-la praefectura_fw-la how_o great_a care_n he_o take_v of_o the_o government_n of_o this_o flock_n here_o he_o will_v have_v we_o mark_v that_o chrysostom_n call_v it_o a_o rule_n &_o government_n of_o the_o flock_n which_o christ_n intend_v yea_o sir_n we_o see_v it_o very_o well_o but_o you_o will_v make_v we_o blind_a if_o we_o can_v not_o see_v that_o chrysostom_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o general_a rule_n grant_v to_o peter_n only_o but_o of_o the_o government_n of_o every_o church_n by_o every_o pastor_n and_o therefore_o you_o dance_v naked_a in_o a_o net_n when_o you_o allege_v the_o word_n follow_v absolute_o as_o though_o they_o pertain_v to_o peter_n
only_o petrum_fw-la christus_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la praeditum_fw-la esse_fw-la voluit_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereas_o chrysostom_n speak_v to_o every_o priest_n &_o show_v how_o careful_a he_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o his_o office_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o high_a call_n &_o the_o excellent_a dignity_n thereof_o say_v etiam_fw-la ne_fw-la nune_n nobisium_n contend_v fraudemistam_fw-la tibi_fw-la non_fw-la bene_fw-la ac_fw-la foeliciter_fw-la cessisse_fw-la quiper_n eam_fw-la universis_fw-la dei_fw-la optimi_fw-la maximi_fw-la bonis_fw-la administrandis_fw-la sis_fw-la praeficiendus_fw-la quumpraesertim_fw-la ea_fw-la agas_fw-la quecum_fw-la petrus_n ageret_fw-la illum_fw-la christus_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la preditum_fw-la esse_fw-la voluit_fw-la ac_fw-la reliquos_fw-la item_n apostolos_fw-la longen_fw-mi praecellere_fw-la will_v thou_o then_o still_o contend_v with_o we_o that_o this_o fraud_n have_v not_o happen_v well_o &_o lucky_o to_o thou_o which_o by_o it_o be_v to_o be_v make_v overseer_n of_o all_o the_o good_n of_o god_n almighty_a especial_o when_o thou_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o when_o peter_n do_v christ_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v endue_v with_o authority_n &_o also_o far_o to_o excel_v the_o other_o apostle_n here_o m._n saunder_n will_v have_v we_o note_v 3._o thing_n 1_o peter_n authority_n 2._o pass_v the_o apostle_n 3._o far_o pass_v we_o mark_v they_o all_o that_o they_o be_v direct_o overthrow_v m._n sanders_n rock_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o they_o declare_v that_o peter_n in_o do_v those_o thing_n be_v endue_v with_o authority_n &_o far_o pass_v the_o other_o apostle_n even_o as_o every_o priest_n to_o who_o chrysostom_n speak_v when_o he_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o authority_n &_o far_o pass_v all_o other_o man_n so_o that_o here_o be_v none_o other_o authority_n nor_o excellence_n of_o peter_n then_o such_o as_o be_v common_a to_o all_o minister_n in_o execute_v their_o charge_n and_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o peter_n do_v for_o chrysostom_n prove_v to_o basil_n that_o he_o do_v he_o no_o hurt_n when_o by_o policy_n he_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v call_v to_o the_o ministry_n against_o his_o will_n see_v that_o thereby_o he_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o reward_n of_o the_o faithful_a &_o wise_a servant_n and_o equal_a in_o authority_n with_o peter_n if_o of_o love_n towards_o christ_n he_o will_v diligent_o feed_v his_o flock_n so_o that_o leo_n have_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o say_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o great_a authority_n peter_n have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n commit_v to_o he_o but_o rather_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o love_n christ_n which_o have_v so_o merciful_o forgive_v he_o so_o shameful_a a_o fall_n but_o arnobius_n be_v a_o less_o partial_a witness_n than_o leo_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o he_o upon_o the_o psal._n 138._o write_v thus_o nullus_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la etc._n etc._n none_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o name_n of_o a_o pastor_n for_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n alone_o say_v i_o be_o the_o good_a pastor_n &_o again_o my_o sheep_n follow_v i_o therefore_o this_o holy_a name_n &_o the_o power_n of_o this_o name_n after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o grant_v to_o peter_n repent_v and_o he_o that_o be_v thrice_o deny_v give_v to_o his_o denier_n that_o power_n which_o he_o have_v alone_o arnobius_n say_v he_o note_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n ever_o to_o have_v have_v the_o name_n of_o a_o pastor_n give_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n beside_o s._n peter_n alone_o but_o i_o demand_v of_o m._n s._n where_o he_o have_v in_o arnobius_n this_o word_n ever_o for_o he_o say_v y_fw-fr t_o peter_n have_v this_o name_n after_o y_z e_z resurrection_n with_o c_o none_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o apostles_n have_v before_o he_o write_v against_o the_o novatians_n which_o c_o deny_v help_v to_o such_o as_o repent_v after_o baptism_n prove_v by_o example_n of_o peter_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receyve_v see_v christ_n give_v he_o great_a dignity_n after_o his_o repentance_n than_o he_o have_v before_o his_o fall_n but_o that_o peter_n have_v great_a authority_n they_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o never_o think_v or_o say_v m._n saunder_n cut_v of_o both_o the_o head_n and_o the_o tail_n in_o this_o discourse_n lest_o the_o meaning_n of_o arnobius_n may_v appear_v for_o thus_o he_o write_v dicis_fw-la cert_n baptizatis_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la poenitentibus_fw-la subveniri_fw-la ecce_fw-la apostolo_n poenitenti_fw-la succurritur_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la episcopus_fw-la &_o mai●r_fw-la gradus_fw-la additur_fw-la ploranti_fw-la quam_fw-la sublatus_fw-la est_fw-la deneganti_fw-la quod_fw-la ut_fw-la doceam_fw-la illud_fw-la est_fw-la endo_fw-la quod_fw-la nullus_fw-la apostolorun_n nomen_fw-la pasioris_fw-la accepit_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o deed_n thou_o say_v that_o such_o as_o repent_v be_v baptize_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v help_v behold_v the_o apostle_n repent_v be_v help_v which_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o a_o great_a degree_n be_v restore_v to_o he_o weep_v then_o be_v take_v from_o he_o deny_v which_o that_o i_o may_v teach_v this_o i_o show_v that_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o name_n of_o a_o shepherd_n etc._n etc._n again_o in_o the_o end_n follow_v the_o word_n before_o cite_v by_o m._n saunder_n he_o say_v ut_fw-la non_fw-la s●lum_fw-la recuperasse_fw-la quod_fw-la amiserat_fw-la probaretur_fw-la verum_fw-la etiam_fw-la &_o multo_fw-la amplius_fw-la poenitendo_fw-la quam_fw-la negand●_n perdiderat_fw-la acquisisse_fw-la he_o give_v his_o denier_n that_o power_n which_o before_o his_o resurrection_n he_o alone_o have_v that_o he_o may_v be_v prove_v not_o only_o to_o have_v recover_v that_o which_o he_o lose_v but_o also_o to_o have_v get_v much_o more_o by_o repent_v than_o he_o lose_v by_o deny_v this_o speak_v arnobius_n of_o the_o general_a authority_n which_o peter_n have_v over_o all_o the_o church_n as_o every_o apostle_n have_v likewise_o &_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o overseer_n of_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n and_o a_o pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o thing_n arnobius_n never_o do_v deny_v these_o therefore_o be_v m._n sanders_n argument_n none_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o name_n of_o a_o pastor_n before_o christ_n resurrection_n ergo_fw-la they_o never_o have_v it_o peter_n be_v call_v to_o great_a dignity_n after_o his_o fall_n then_o he_o have_v before_o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v great_a than_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n again_o peter_n be_v a_o bishop_n or_o a_o overseer_n of_o bishop_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v bishop_n over_o the_o apostle_n next_o arnobius_n be_v cite_v ambrose_n in_o 24._o luc._n who_o first_o aid_n that_o peter_n be_v every_o where_n either_o alone_a or_o first_o and_o they_o upon_o these_o word_n peter_n do_v thou_o love_v i_o say_v dominus_fw-la interrogat_fw-la etc._n etc._n our_o lord_n ask_v net_n to_o learn_v but_o to_o teach_v who_o he_o be_v to_o be_v l●fted_v up_o into_o heaven_n do_v leave_v to_o we_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o his_o love_n for_o so_o thou_o have_v ●●_o simon_n thou_o son_n of_o john_n do_v thou_o l●ue_v i_o yea_o lord_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o love_v thou_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o lamb_n peter_n be_v privy_a of_o a_o good_a conscience_n do_v testify_v his_o own_o affection_n not_o take_v for_o the_o time_n but_o already_o well_o know_v to_o god_n for_o who_o else_o be_v able_a to_o profess_v this_o thing_n of_o himself_o a●d_a because_o he_o alone_o among_o all_o profess_v he_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o m._n saunder_n omit_v the_o conclusion_n maior_fw-la enim_fw-la omnibus_fw-la charitas_fw-la for_o the_o great_a of_o all_o be_v chari●ie_a so_o peter_n be_v hereby_o declare_v to_o have_v the_o great_a love_n but_o not_o to_o have_v the_o great_a authority_n m._n saunder_n urge_v that_o he_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n love_n and_o pastoral_a office_n the_o one_o indeed_o ambrose_n say_v the_o other_o saunder_n say_v but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v no_o not_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o ambrose_n that_o peter_n have_v commit_v to_o he_o to_o feed_v not_o only_o the_o lamb_n with_o milk_n as_o at_o the_o first_o nor_o yet_o the_o little_a sheep_n as_o at_o the_o second_o time_n but_o the_o sheep_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o be_v more_o perfect_a may_v govern_v the_o more_o perfect_v for_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o same_o charge_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o the_o lamb_n or_o little_a sheep_n only_o neither_o do_v the_o word_n of_o government_n help_v he_o for_o every_o apostle_n have_v the_o like_a government_n over_o the_o whole_a flock_n w_o c_o peter_n have_v and_o there_o be_v a_o ordinary_a government_n in_o every_o particular_a church_n 1._o co._n 12._o w_o c_o
govern_v all_o the_o faithful_a by_o help_n of_o many_o inferior_a officer_n as_o though_o the_o church_n have_v not_o inferior_a officer_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o s._n peter_n then_o be_v not_o able_a to_o rule_v w_o c_o have_v such_o great_a gift_n muchlesse_a the_o pope_n which_o be_v nothing_o comparable_a with_o he_o in_o gift_n &_o be_v often_o a_o wicked_a man_n &_o a_o here_o tike_n be_v able_a to_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n for_o he_o have_v not_o so_o great_a a_o help_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o world_n as_o he_o have_v a_o want_n of_o peter_n gracious_a gift_n meet_v for_o such_o a_o government_n second_o he_o will_v have_v we_o mark_v the_o peculiar_a name_n of_o a_o rock_n of_o a_o pastor_n &_o of_o a_o confirmer_n of_o his_o brethren_n which_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n to_o s._n peter_n alone_o which_o argue_v that_o peter_n supremacy_n must_v necessary_o continue_v for_o ever_o but_o who_o will_v grant_v to_o m._n s._n that_o christ_n give_v these_o peculiar_a name_n to_o peter_n alone_o indeed_o that_o which_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n peter_n be_v a_o rock_n not_o his_o person_n but_o his_o doctrine_n that_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o church_n he_o be_v a_o shephearde_n and_o confirmer_n of_o his_o brethren_n and_o there_o be_v now_o many_o shepherd_n and_o confirmer_n of_o their_o brethren_n three_o he_o say_v the_o church_n never_o want_v a_o visible_a rock_n on_o the_o earth_n beside_o the_o eternal_a rock_n christ_n who_o in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v so_o strong_o fasten_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n the_o great_a rock_n that_o he_o though_o not_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n yet_o for_o the_o church_n sake_n may_v be_v able_a to_o stay_v uppe_o all_o other_o small_a stone_n which_o join_v unto_o he_o until_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n who_o likewise_o appoint_v saint_n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o be_v this_o ordinary_a rock_n as_o adam_n enos_n henoch_n no_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n moses_n aaron_n and_o his_o successor_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ._n against_o this_o i_o say_v that_o the_o church_n militant_a on_o earth_n have_v her_o foundation_n in_o heaven_n and_o not_o on_o earth_n therefore_o the_o church_n have_v not_o a_o visible_a rock_n in_o earth_n again_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o some_o one_o have_v always_o be_v this_o visible_a rock_n on_o earth_n for_o who_o be_v great_a abraham_n or_o melchisedech_n out_o of_o all_o controversy_n melchisedech_n then_o be_v not_o abraham_n the_o only_a rock_n after_o the_o death_n of_o jacob_n and_o the_o twelve_o patriarch_n who_o be_v the_o visible_a rock_n until_o moses_n be_v call_v and_o yet_o have_v god_n a_o church_n among_o the_o jew_n all_o that_o time_n three_o who_o be_v so_o impudent_a to_o say_v that_o all_o the_o successor_n of_o aaron_n be_v so_o strong_o fasten_v in_o the_o faith_n that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o stay_v all_o the_o small_a stone_n that_o lean_v upon_o they_o be_v not_o urias_n the_o high_a priest_n a_o idolater_n 2._o reg._n 16._o what_o be_v jason_n menclaus_n lysimachus_n by_o the_o report_n of_o the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n be_v not_o caiphas_n &_o annas_n sadducee_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n luke_n act._n 5._o and_o of_o josephus_n where_o be_v then_o the_o visible_a rock_n who_o faith_n never_o fail_v &_o c_o we_o see_v there_o be_v none_o such_o before_o christ_n therefore_o there_o need_v to_o be_v none_o such_o after_o he_o his_o four_o reason_n be_v of_o the_o name_n of_o a_o pastor_n which_o signify_v a_o ordinary_a office_n for_o as_o the_o sheep_n continue_v after_o s._n peter_n death_n so_o must_v there_o be_v also_o a_o shepherd_n as_o peter_n be_v but_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o peter_n be_v a_o only_a shepherd_n forsooth_o chrysostom_n say_v lib._n 2._o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la christus_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la etc._n etc._n christ_n have_v shed_v his_o blood_n to_o purchase_v those_o sheep_n the_o care_n of_o who_o he_o do_v commit_v both_o to_o peter_n &_o to_o peter_n successor_n but_o who_o do_v chrysostom_n take_v for_o peter_n successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o no_o very_o but_o all_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o his_o word_n go_v before_o do_v manifest_o declare_v neque_fw-la enim_fw-la tum_fw-la volebat_fw-la testatum_fw-la esse_fw-la quantum_fw-la à_fw-la petro_n amaretur_fw-la siquidem_fw-la id_fw-la multis_fw-la nobis_fw-la argument_n be_v constabat_fw-la verum_fw-la hoc_fw-la ille_fw-la sum_fw-la agebat_fw-la ut_fw-la &_o petrum_fw-la &_o caeteros_fw-la nos_fw-la edoceres_fw-la quanta_fw-la benevolentia_fw-la ac_fw-la charitate_fw-la ergasuam_fw-la ipse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la afficeretur_fw-la ut_fw-la hac_fw-la ratione_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la quoque_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la studium_fw-la curamque_fw-la toto_fw-la animo_fw-la susciperemus_fw-la for_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o then_o to_o testify_v unto_o we_o how_o much_o he_o be_v belove_v of_o peter_n for_o that_o be_v evident_a unto_o we_o by_o many_o argument_n but_o this_o thing_n than_o he_o intend_v that_o he_o may_v teach_v both_o peter_n and_o all_o we_o what_o benevolence_n and_o love_n he_o bear_v toward_o his_o church_n that_o by_o this_o reason_n we_o also_o may_v take_v upon_o we_o with_o all_o our_o hart_n the_o love_n &_o charge_n of_o the_o same_o church_n this_o sentence_n show_v that_o chrysostome_n account_v himself_o &_o every_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n a_o successor_n of_o peter_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alone_o as_o for_o leo_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v often_o protest_v that_o he_o be_v more_o addict_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o see_v than_o the_o scripture_n will_v bear_v he_o and_o therefore_o be_v overrule_v and_o resist_v in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n his_o five_o argument_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o law_n where_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o right_a aught_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o peter_n confession_n and_o power_n be_v such_o as_o agree_v to_o any_o ordinary_a office_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o office_n of_o peter_n be_v a_o rock_n of_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n and_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n be_v a_o ordinary_a office_n but_o i_o say_v that_o peter_n confession_n make_v he_o not_o a_o rock_n but_o declare_v he_o so_o to_o be_v be_v appoint_v of_o christ_n for_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o office_n of_o strengthen_v and_o feed_v as_o it_o be_v not_o singular_a in_o peter_n so_o it_o be_v not_o ordinary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v singular_a in_o any_o man_n his_o sixth_o reason_n irenaeus_n optatus_n and_o augustine_n do_v reckon_v up_o such_o successor_n of_o peter_n as_o have_v live_v till_o eu●rie_v of_o their_o age_n or_o time_n therefore_o peter_n have_v successor_n in_o his_o pastoral_a office_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o he_o have_v they_o and_o other_o bishop_n also_o successor_n in_o his_o pastoral_a office_n at_o least_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n whereby_o your_o own_o cofession_n he_o be_v bishop_n before_o he_o come_v to_o rome_n therefore_o his_o succession_n be_v not_o singular_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o see_v his_o seven_o reason_n no_o man_n may_v preach_v to_o they_o to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o send_v therefore_o there_o must_v be_v a_o general_a pastor_n to_o send_v other_o to_o preach_v to_o they_o that_o be_v not_o convert_v to_o plant_v new_a bishoprike_v to_o control_v they_o that_o be_v negligent_a to_o supply_v the_o thing_n that_o lack_v to_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o live_v in_o no_o diocese_n etc._n etc._n for_o send_v he_o quote_v rom._n 10._o where_o mention_n be_v only_o of_o the_o send_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o send_n by_o man_n but_o all_o his_o question_n and_o doubt_n may_v be_v answer_v either_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o general_a counsel_n or_o every_o particular_a church_n in_o their_o synod_n as_o they_o shall_v see_v most_o expedient_a may_v send_v preacher_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n send_v peter_n and_o john_n into_o samaria_n &_o order_v all_o such_o matter_n as_o he_o imagine_v must_v be_v do_v only_o by_o the_o pope_n but_o he_o ask_v who_o shall_v summon_v all_o other_o bishop_n to_o general_a or_o provincial_a counsel_n and_o i_o ask_v he_o who_o summon_v the_o four_o great_a &_o principal_a general_a counsel_n and_o so_o many_o provincial_a counsel_n but_o the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n in_o who_o dominion_n they_o be_v gather_v so_o that_o here_o be_v no_o necessary_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n that_o do_v require_v one_o general_a pastor_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n when_o all_o thing_n may_v and_o have_v be_v do_v best_a of_o all_o without_o he_o as_o for_o place_v of_o bishop_n in_o see_v
vacant_a unite_n of_o two_o bishoprike_n in_o one_o or_o divide_v one_o into_o two_o may_v better_o be_v do_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o church_n with_o consent_n of_o their_o prince_n who_o see_v and_o know_v what_o be_v needful_a in_o those_o case_n then_o by_o one_o which_o sittinge_n in_o his_o chair_n at_o rome_n require_v half_o a_o year_n travel_v from_o some_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o he_o before_o he_o can_v be_v advertise_v of_o the_o case_n and_o yet_o must_v understande_v it_o by_o hear_v say_v and_o therefore_o not_o able_a to_o see_v what_o be_v expedient_a so_o well_o as_o they_o that_o be_v present_a and_o see_v the_o state_n of_o the_o matter_n final_o it_o be_v against_o all_o likelihood_n that_o christ_n will_v make_v such_o a_o general_a shepherd_n over_o all_o his_o flock_n as_o many_o thousand_o sheep_n which_o live_v under_o the_o sophi_n the_o cham_n the_o turk_n can_v have_v none_o access_n unto_o for_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v suppose_v necessary_a to_o be_v have_v and_o to_o be_v obtain_v from_o he_o only_o wherefore_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o by_o cruelty_n of_o tyrant_n be_v cut_v from_o he_o shall_v be_v cut_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o if_o hethenish_a tyrant_n can_v so_o much_o prevail_v as_o they_o do_v in_o hinder_v this_o government_n of_o the_o pope_n pretend_v to_o be_v so_o necessary_a the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o christ._n the_o fourteen_o chapter_n that_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o s._n peter_n primacy_n belong_v saunder_n to_o one_o bishop_n alone_o the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n tend_v to_o unity_n concern_v peter_n primacy_n as_o there_o be_v little_a in_o the_o scripture_n whereupon_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v so_o i_o have_v fulke_n show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o perpetual_a for_o there_o be_v great_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o primacy_n of_o james._n again_o the_o great_a show_n of_o peter_n primacy_n that_o we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o primacy_n or_o head_n apostleship_n of_o the_o circumcision_n so_o that_o if_o one_o bishop_n shall_v succeed_v he_o in_o that_o primacy_n he_o must_v be_v chief_a bishop_n over_o the_o jew_n and_o not_o over_o the_o gentile_n for_o the_o chief_a apostleship_n over_o the_o gentile_n be_v by_o god_n commit_v to_o paul_n galat._n 2._o 7._o &_o 8._o but_o if_o m._n saunder_n say_v as_o he_o do_v in_o a_o other_o place_n that_o the_o pope_n succeed_v both_o these_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o have_v both_o their_o authority_n first_o he_o overthrow_v his_o own_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v peter_n alone_o secondlie_o his_o argument_n of_o unity_n which_o he_o urge_v in_o this_o chapter_n he_o subvert_v if_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v derive_v from_o two_o head_n three_o he_o destroy_v his_o own_o distinction_n of_o bishoplike_a and_o apostolic_a authority_n if_o the_o apostolic_a authority_n of_o paul_n shall_v descend_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o succession_n now_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o weighty_a reason_n he_o have_v to_o prove_v the_o title_n of_o this_o chapter_n s._n peter_n authority_n be_v specify_v before_o the_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o bind_v &_o lose_v mat._n 18._o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v first_o in_o he_o alone_o it_o ought_v to_o descend_v to_o one_o bishop_n alone_o but_o let_v m._n saunder_n show_v where_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o alone_o or_o promise_v to_o he_o alone_o either_o for_o the_o promise_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v peter_n give_v he_o no_o authority_n nor_o yet_o the_o performance_n thereof_o thou_o be_v peter_n but_o still_o the_o authority_n be_v promise_v i_o will_v build_v i_o will_v geve_v i_o reason_n as_o m._n saunder_n do_v of_o the_o future_a tense_n which_o promise_n be_v make_v math._n 16._o be_v perform_v math._n 18._o not_o to_o peter_n only_o but_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o all_o authority_n be_v give_v in_o common_a jo●an_n 20._o but_o s._n cyprian_n ad_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o authority_n first_o to_o peter_n petro_n primus_fw-la dominus_fw-la super_fw-la quem_fw-la aedificavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o unitatis_fw-la originem_fw-la instituit_fw-la &_o ostendit_fw-la potestatem_fw-la istam_fw-la dedit_fw-la ut_fw-la id_fw-la solueretur_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la soluisset_fw-la this_o do_v m._n saunder_n translate_v our_o lord_n do_v first_o geve_v unto_o peter_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o he_o shall_v say_v our_o lord_n be_v the_o first_o that_o give_v to_o peter_n upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o institute_v and_o show_v the_o begin_v of_o unity_n this_o power_n that_o whatsoever_o he_o loose_v it_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o earth_n this_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n come_v first_o from_o christ_n but_o not_o that_o it_o be_v give_v first_o to_o peter_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v understand_v it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v first_o give_v to_o peter_n yet_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o reside_v in_o his_o person_n but_o that_o in_o he_o as_o the_o attorney_n of_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v give_v to_o they_o also_o as_o he_o say_v lib._n 1._o ep._n 3._o petrus_n tamen_fw-la super_fw-la quem_fw-la aedificata_fw-la ab_fw-la eodem_fw-la domino_fw-la fuerat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la unus_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la loquens_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la voce_fw-la respondens_fw-la ait_fw-la domine_fw-la ad_fw-la quem_fw-la ibimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n yet_o peter_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n have_v be_v build_v by_o the_o same_o our_o lord_n as_o one_o speak_v for_o all_o and_o answer_v in_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n say_v lord_n whether_o shall_v we_o go_v &c._n &c._n as_o he_o speak_v for_o all_o so_o he_o receive_v for_o all_o which_o thing_n if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o as_o we_o sinde_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o can_v it_o have_v be_v no_o ordinary_a matter_n to_o descend_v to_o one_o by_o succession_n for_o the_o power_n be_v once_o receive_v by_o one_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o by_o he_o deliver_v to_o the_o rest_n it_o shall_v be_v continue_v in_o succession_n of_o every_o one_o that_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o not_o every_o day_n to_o be_v fetch_v a_o new_a from_o a_o several_a head_n for_o that_o beginning_n come_v from_o unity_n which_o cyprian_n speak_v of_o when_o peter_n be_v one_o be_v the_o voice_n &_o mouth_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o receive_v power_n for_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v once_o receive_v the_o church_n hold_v of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o peter_n or_o his_o successor_n no_o more_o than_o a_o corporation_n hold_v of_o he_o that_o be_v their_o attorney_n to_o receive_v either_o land_n or_o authority_n from_o the_o prince_n but_o hold_v immediate_o of_o the_o prince_n wherefore_o this_o argument_n follow_v not_o although_o the_o authority_n have_v begin_v in_o one_o that_o it_o shall_v continue_v in_o one_o the_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o most_o perfect_a government_n be_v meet_v for_o the_o church_n but_o most_o perfection_n be_v in_o unity_n therefore_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o chief_a governor_n of_o all_o this_o one_o chief_a governor_n be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n ruler_n both_o in_o heaven_n &_o in_o earth_n who_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n do_v not_o appoint_v one_o pope_n over_o all_o his_o church_n but_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o we_o may_v all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o grow_v into_o a_o perfect_a man_n eph._n 4._o 11._o &_o 12._o the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n must_v be_v more_o perfect_a than_o the_o law_n but_o in_o the_o law_n there_o be_v one_o high_a pastor_n the_o high_a priest_n on_o earth_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o now_o also_o and_o much_o rather_o i_o answer_v we_o have_v he_o in_o deed_n our_o chief_a bishop_n &_o high_a priest_n of_o who_o the_o aaronicall_a priest_n be_v but_o a_o shadow_n namely_o jesus_n christ_n who_o government_n be_v nothing_o less_o perfect_a and_o beneficial_a to_o his_o church_n in_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o heaven_n and_o have_v as_o before_o be_v cite_v leave_v a_o ordinary_a ministry_n on_o earth_n in_o many_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n over_o every_o several_a congregation_n and_o not_o in_o one_o pope_n over_o all_o which_o can_v not_o possible_o either_o know_v or_o attend_v to_o decide_v the_o one_o thousand_o part_n of_o controversy_n which_o be_v determine_v by_o y_z e_z authority_n of_o christ_n law_n and_o such_o minister_n as_o he_o have_v ordain_v the_o four_o reason_n be_v of_o authority_n cyprian_n ad_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n
the_o church_n which_o be_v one_o be_v found_v by_o our_o lord_n voice_n upon_o one_o which_o receive_v the_o key_n thereof_o and_o again_o de_fw-fr simplicitat_fw-la praelat_fw-la quamsis_n &c._n &c._n although_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n geve_v equal_a power_n to_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o you_o remit_v to_o any_o man_n his_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v remit_v and_o if_o you_o retain_v they_o they_o shall_v be_v retain_v yet_o that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o unity_n he_o dispose_v by_o his_o authority_n the_o original_n of_o that_o unity_n begin_v of_o one_o but_o cyprian_n proceed_v hoc_fw-la erant_fw-la etc._n etc._n vere_n by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o peter_n be_v endue_v with_o equal_a fellowship_n both_o of_o honour_n and_o of_o power_n but_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v from_o unity_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o these_o word_n be_v plain_a to_o declare_v that_o cyprian_n acknowledge_v no_o inequality_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o respect_n of_o any_o authority_n they_o have_v also_o that_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o one_o and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o key_n of_o one_o be_v not_o a_o ordinary_a office_n to_o descend_v by_o succession_n but_o a_o singular_a privilege_n for_o that_o one_o time_n to_o show_v the_o beginning_n and_o not_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o power_n to_o proceed_v from_o one_o but_o to_o be_v hold_v always_o of_o one_o which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n without_o any_o shadow_n of_o one_o bishop_n on_o earth_n to_o signify_v the_o same_o when_o christ_n be_v reveal_v with_o open_a face_n unto_o we_o now_o sit_v in_o heaven_n 2._o cor._n 3._o 18._o the_o like_a thing_n teach_v optatus_n lib._n 2._o the_o schism_n ut_fw-la in_o ●na_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o in_o one_o chair_n in_o which_o peter_n sit_v unity_n may_v be_v keep_v of_o all_o man_n lest_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v every_o one_o challenge_v a_o chair_n to_o himself_o so_o that_o he_o shall_v now_o be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n that_o against_o a_o singular_a chair_n shall_v place_v a_o other_o therefore_o in_o that_o one_o chair_n which_o be_v chief_a in_o gift_n peter_n sit_v first_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o defend_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o donatist_n but_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o peter_n chair_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n chair_n if_o he_o have_v speak_v any_o thing_n m._n saunder_n will_v not_o have_v conceal_v it_o which_o do_v we_o great_a wrong_n to_o think_v that_o we_o can_v not_o distinguishe_v a_o chair_n of_o unity_n from_o a_o chair_n of_o authority_n the_o place_n of_o hierom_n cont_n jovin_n lib._n 1._o have_v be_v answer_v once_o or_o twice_o show_v that_o among_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v equal_a peter_n be_v choose_v to_o be_v primate_n to_o avoid_v contention_n which_o be_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o not_o of_o authority_n as_o for_o the_o collection_n of_o lco_n bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o peter_n primacy_n be_v a_o platform_n for_o other_o bishop_n to_o understand_v that_o they_o must_v have_v a_o bishop_n over_o they_o if_o the_o very_a apostle_n have_v a_o head_n among_o they_o savore_v of_o the_o ambition_n incident_a to_o that_o see_v which_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n although_o neither_o leo_n himself_o challenge_v so_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v now_o neither_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o time_n will_v yield_v unto_o he_o in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o challenge_v for_o beside_o the_o whole_a general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o conclude_v against_o he_o about_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n wherein_o they_o make_v he_o equal_a with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o title_n of_o seniority_n only_o reserve_v it_o appear_v by_o his_o epistle_n that_o many_o bishop_n acknowledge_v not_o such_o primacy_n over_o they_o as_o he_o claim_v whereof_o he_o complame_v in_o diverse_a of_o his_o epistle_n the_o place_n of_o cyprian_a lib._n 1._o epist._n 3._o that_o heresy_n have_v spring_v because_o one_o judge_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v in_o stead_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o time_n to_o who_o the_o whole_a brotherhood_n may_v obey_v he_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o cyprian_a of_o one_o judge_n in_o every_o diocese_n but_o he_o reason_v a_o fortiori_fw-la that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v much_o rather_o one_o judge_n over_o all_o the_o world_n howbeit_o i_o have_v show_v the_o in_o consequence_n of_o this_o argument_n by_o example_n of_o one_o physician_n one_o schoolmaster_n one_o judge_n in_o temporal_a matter_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o who_o it_o be_v as_o impossible_a to_o discharge_v such_o a_o office_n over_o all_o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o one_o such_o to_o be_v in_o every_o town_n he_o say_v that_o particular_a flock_n be_v voluntary_a and_o likewise_o particular_a pastor_n but_o one_o flock_n and_o one_o pastor_n be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n on_o earth_n in_o deed_n the_o limit_n of_o particular_a flock_n and_o the_o person_n of_o particular_a pastor_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o appointment_n and_o choice_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v particular_a flock_n and_o pastor_n it_o be_v of_o god_n ordination_n though_o god_n by_o his_o apostle_n appoint_v it_o to_o be_v so_o yet_o be_v it_o of_o as_o absolute_a necessity_n while_o the_o church_n be_v disperse_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o world_n as_o that_o there_o be_v one_o flock_n and_o one_o shepherd_n over_o all_o jesus_n christ_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o challenge_v we_o pag._n 298._o let_v the_o text_n be_v name_v where_o christ_n do_v institute_v many_o parish_n whereas_o he_o himself_o pag._n 294._o quote_v tit._n 1._o &_o act._n 14._o which_o place_n prove_v that_o christ_n do_v institute_v many_o parish_n except_o he_o will_v say_v the_o apostle_n do_v it_o without_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o confess_v they_o do_v not_o without_o the_o special_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o will_v say_v that_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o many_o parish_n differ_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n but_o he_o that_o wrangle_v thus_o impudent_o and_o unreasonable_o against_o the_o plain_a institution_n of_o many_o parish_n by_o christ_n bring_v a_o plain_a text_n where_o it_o be_v say_v feed_v i_o sheep_n to_o one_o pastor_n have_v this_o man_n any_o forehead_n think_v you_o that_o call_v this_o a_o plain_a text_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o shepherd_n upon_o earth_n over_o all_o the_o flock_n because_o christ_n upon_o special_a occasion_n exhort_v one_o man_n to_o feed_v his_o flock_n be_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v speak_v to_o he_o singular_a unto_o he_o christ_n say_v to_o he_o and_o to_o none_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n come_v after_o i_o satan_n thou_o be_v a_o offence_n to_o i_o for_o thou_o savere_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n but_o of_o man_n christ_n say_v to_o peter_n and_o to_o none_o other_o put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o thy_o scabbard_n christ_n say_v to_o peter_n and_o to_o none_o other_o thou_o will_v deny_v i_o thrice_o o_o paint_a rock_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n that_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n than_o this_o say_n feed_v my_o sheep_n when_o he_o that_o challenge_v authority_n hereby_o of_o all_o other_o feed_v least_o and_o poyson_v most_o but_o let_v we_o return_v and_o see_v what_o authority_n of_o old_a father_n he_o have_v to_o prove_v one_o pastoral_a pre-eminence_n over_o all_o the_o church_n cyprian_n lib._n 1._o ep._n 8._o deus_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o christus_fw-la unus_fw-la &_o una_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o cathedra_fw-la una_fw-la super_fw-la petram_fw-la domini_fw-la voce_fw-la fundata_fw-la there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o christ_n and_o one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n found_v upon_o peter_n by_o our_o lord_n voice_n hear_v i_o say_v first_o of_o all_o that_o he_o do_v falsify_v saint_n cyprian_n word_n turn_v pegram_n into_o petrum_fw-la so_o that_o his_o say_n be_v there_o be_v one_o chair_n by_o our_o lord_n voice_n found_v on_o the_o rock_n an_o other_o altar_n or_o a_o new_a priesthood_n can_v not_o be_v appoint_v beside_o one_o altar_n and_o one_o priesthood_n whosoever_o gather_v elsewhere_o scatter_v abroad_o etc._n etc._n but_o if_o the_o word_n be_v petrum_fw-la and_o not_o petram_fw-la yet_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o that_o epistle_n show_v that_o cyptian_a mean_v by_o these_o word_n to_o set_v forth_o not_o the_o past_a oral_a pre-eminence_n of_o one_o man_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o one_o
out_o of_o the_o counterfeit_a egesippus_fw-la of_o simon_n magus_n fly_v in_o the_o air_n &_o the_o emperor_n nero_n his_o great_a delight_n in_o his_o sorcerye_n the_o credit_n of_o egesippus_fw-la he_o descend_v by_o blame_v his_o translator_n for_o add_v name_n of_o city_n which_o have_v none_o such_o when_o egesippus_fw-la live_v but_o that_o simon_n magus_n show_v no_o experiment_n ofsorcerye_o before_o nero_n as_o this_o counterfeit_a egesippus_fw-la report_v it_o be_v plain_a by_o plinius_n lib._n 30._o cap._n 2._o nature_n histor._n who_o show_v how_o desirous_a nero_n be_v and_o what_o mean_v he_o have_v to_o have_v trial_n thereof_o yet_o never_o can_v come_v by_o any_o it_o be_v a_o practice_n of_o old_a time_n to_o fain_v such_o fable_n for_o love_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o tertullian_n witness_v de_fw-la baptis_fw-la of_o a_o priest_n of_o asia_n that_o be_v convict_v &_o confess_v that_o he_o feign_v for_o the_o love_n of_o paul_n a_o writing_n unto_o tecla_n in_o which_o many_o absurd_a thing_n be_v contain_v again_o so_o many_o apocryphal_a gospel_n epistle_n itinerarye_n and_o passion_n as_o be_v counterfeit_v under_o the_o name_n of_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n who_o know_v not_o to_o be_v fable_n and_o false_a invention_n among_o which_o this_o fable_n of_o simon_n magus_n and_o peter_n be_v one_o that_o s._n luke_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o peter_n death_n he_o prevent_v the_o objection_n because_o he_o continue_v not_o his_o story_n so_o far_o which_o doubt_n say_v he_o he_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v if_o he_o have_v go_v so_o far_o forward_o in_o his_o story_n but_o see_v he_o bring_v paul_n to_o rome_n both_o in_o his_o journey_n and_o in_o his_o history_n why_o make_v he_o no_o mention_n of_o peter_n be_v there_o which_o if_o their_o story_n be_v true_a must_v have_v sit_v there_o twenty_o year_n before_o to_o omit_v therefore_o the_o four_o cause_n why_o peter_n shall_v die_v at_o rome_n whereof_o three_o be_v take_v out_o of_o a_o counterfeit_a august_n de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr ctis_fw-la hom_n 27._o the_o 4._o out_o of_o leo_n &_o gregory_n bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o come_v to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n between_o the_o greek_n &_o latin_n who_o be_v first_o successor_n of_o peter_n linus_n or_o clemens_n take_v part_n with_o they_o that_o affirm_v clemens_n although_o irenaeus_n the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n of_o any_o that_o be_v extant_a name_n linus_n who_o be_v not_o a_o grecian_a far_o of_o but_o a_o frenchmam_fw-la at_o lion_n near_o hand_n to_o italy_n who_o authority_n although_o he_o reject_v in_o name_v linus_n to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o both_o the_o apostle_n yet_o he_o glori_v much_o that_o he_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n maximam_fw-la &_o antiquissimam_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o great_a and_o the_o most_o ancient_a &_o know_v to_o all_o man_n found_v and_o settle_v by_o two_o most_o glorious_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o again_o adhanc_n ecclesiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o this_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o mighty_a principality_n every_o church_n that_o be_v the_o faithful_a that_o be_v every_o where_o must_v needs_o agree_v but_o he_o proceed_v and_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o in_o qua_fw-la semper_fw-la ab_fw-la he_o qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la undique_fw-la conser●ata_fw-la est_fw-la ca_fw-mi quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traditio_fw-la in_o which_o always_o that_o tradition_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v always_o keep_v of_o they_o that_o be_v round_o about_o m._n saunder_n call_v it_o wilful_a ignorance_n in_o m._n jewel_n that_o say_v the_o mighty_a principality_n speak_v of_o in_o irenaeus_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o civil_a dominion_n and_o roman_a empire_n whereas_o it_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o former_a title_n of_o commendation_n that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a and_o the_o most_o ancient_a the_o great_a he_o say_v because_o it_o be_v found_v by_o peter_n the_o great_a apostle_n but_o so_o say_v not_o irenaeus_n for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v found_v by_o two_o most_o glorious_a apostle_n and_o not_o by_o peter_n alone_o it_o be_v then_o great_a because_o the_o great_a number_n of_o christian_n be_v in_o rome_n as_o the_o great_a city_n but_o how_o be_v it_o the_o most_o ancient_a but_o in_o respect_n of_o peter_n senioritie_n for_o otherwise_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n be_v auncient_a in_o tyme._n i_o answer_v two_o way_n first_o it_o be_v sophistical_a to_o urge_v the_o superlative_a degree_n grammatical_o as_o when_o we_o say_v potentissimo_fw-la principi_fw-la to_o the_o most_o mighty_a prince_n doctissimo_fw-la viro_fw-la to_o the_o best_a learned_a man_n etc._n etc._n we_o do_v not_o mean_v that_o no_o prince_n be_v equal_a or_o superior_a in_o power_n nor_o that_o no_o man_n be_v equal_a or_o superior_a in_o learning_n to_o he_o who_o we_o so_o commend_v but_o to_o show_v the_o power_n and_o learning_n of_o those_o person_n to_o be_v excellent_a great_a second_o i_o answer_v that_o irenaeus_n speak_v coniunct_o it_o be_v sophistical_a to_o understande_v several_o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o church_n of_o such_o greatness_n so_o ancient_a and_o so_o well_o know_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o this_o blind_a collection_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n he_o come_v down_o grope_v to_o cyprian_a who_o speak_v of_o certain_a factious_a heretic_n that_o sail_v from_o carthage_n to_o rome_n to_o complain_v of_o saint_n cyprian_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o pope_n cornelius_n lib._n 1._o ep._n 3._o ad_fw-la cor._n audent_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la petri_n etc._n etc._n they_o dare_v carry_v letter_n from_o schismatical_a and_o profane_a man_n unto_o the_o chayer_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o priestly_a unity_n begin_v nether_a consider_v that_o they_o be_v roman_n who_o faith_n be_v pray_v say_v by_o the_o report_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o who_o falsehood_n can_v have_v none_o access_n in_o this_o say_n we_o must_v note_v the_o privilege_n of_o s._n peter_n supremacy_n to_o be_v at_o rome_n 1._o this_o be_v s._n peter_n chayer_n that_o be_v his_o ordinary_a power_n of_o teach_v etc._n etc._n nay_o rather_o the_o bishop_n seat_n which_o he_o and_o paul_n do_v set_v up_o there_o as_o irenaeus_n show_v li._n 3._o ca._n 3._o 2._o there_o be_v the_o principal_a church_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n nay_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v the_o great_a church_n be_v gather_v in_o the_o great_a city_n of_o the_o world_n as_o irenęus_o also_o call_v it_o 3._o the_o priestly_a unity_n begin_v not_o in_o rome_n but_o in_o peter_n therefore_o there_o be_v the_o whole_a authority_n of_o peter_n the_o argument_n be_v nought_o the_o beginning_n of_o unity_n prove_v not_o authority_n 4._o this_o word_n unity_n do_v import_v that_o as_o peter_n alone_o have_v in_o he_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o cbiefe_a shepherd_n so_o cornelius_n his_o successor_n have_v in_o he_o the_o same_o power_n this_o argument_n be_v of_o small_a importance_n for_o nether_a have_v peter_n alone_o such_o power_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n 5._o where_o he_o say_v infidelity_n can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o the_o roman_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o then_o to_o say_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o vule_v for_o who_o faith_n christ_n pray_v luc._n 22._o christ_n pray_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o all_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n joan._n 17._o beside_o this_o master_n saunder_n translate_v perfidia_fw-la which_o signify_v falsehood_n or_o false_a deal_n infidelity_n second_o that_o which_o cyprian_n say_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a roman_n he_o draw_v to_o his_o pope_n three_o where_o cyprian_n show_v how_o long_o they_o shall_v continue_v without_o falsehood_n namely_o so_o long_o as_o they_o retain_v the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o make_v it_o perpetual_a to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n whereas_o the_o roman_n themselves_o write_v to_o cyprian_a of_o those_o praise_n of_o the_o apostle_n quarum_fw-la laudum_fw-la &_o gloriae_fw-la degenerem_fw-la fuisse_fw-la maximum_fw-la crimen_fw-la est_fw-la of_o which_o praise_n and_o glory_n to_o be_v grow_v out_o of_o kind_n it_o be_v the_o great_a crime_n final_o if_o cyprian_n have_v think_v the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o err_v he_o will_v never_o have_v maintain_v a_o opinion_n against_o they_o as_o he_o do_v in_o rebaptisinge_v they_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n the_o 6._o we_o must_v add_v heareto_o that_o cyprian_n call_v rome_n ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la matricem_fw-la &_o radicem_fw-la the_o mother_n &_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n lib_n 4._o epist._n 8._o we_o find_v not_o rome_n so_o call_v there_o we_o find_v that_o cyprian_a &_o his_o fellow_n exhort_v all_o such_o troublesome_a
the_o prince_n be_v one_o &_o of_o the_o priest_n a_o other_o this_o spiritual_a the_o other_o external_a &_o therefore_o no_o contrariety_n between_o they_o for_o put_v the_o case_n that_o philippus_n have_v see_v the_o bishop_n profane_v the_o sacrament_n in_o minister_a to_o infidel_n or_o otherwise_o uncertain_o behave_v himself_o in_o his_o office_n may_v he_o not_o just_o have_v punish_v he_o as_o supreme_a governor_n over_o the_o bishop_n even_o in_o those_o matter_n i_o say_v not_o to_o do_v they_o but_o to_o see_v that_o they_o be_v well_o do_v and_o to_o punish_v the_o offender_n neither_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o oath_n any_o other_o and_o according_a to_o this_o meaning_n m._n nowell_n m._n horn_n and_o m._n jewel_n dare_v warrant_v the_o king_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n although_o it_o please_v m._n saunder_n to_o say_v the_o contrary_a of_o they_o who_o traitorous_a quarrel_a upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n ought_v not_o to_o trouble_v any_o man_n conscience_n when_o the_o meaning_n be_v public_o testify_v both_o by_o the_o prince_n and_o by_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o next_o example_n be_v of_o constantinus_n the_o great_a which_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a when_o the_o bishop_n have_v offer_v unto_o he_o bill_n of_o complaint_n one_o against_o a_o other_o without_o disclose_v the_o content_n of_o they_o he_o say_v as_o ruffinus_n report_v lib._n 10._o cap._n 2._o deus_fw-la vos_fw-la constituit_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la etc._n etc._n god_n have_v make_v you_o priest_n and_o have_v give_v you_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o we_o also_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v rigt_o judge_v of_o you_o but_o you_o can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o i_o for_o which_o cause_n expect_v you_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n alone_o among_o you_o here_o m._n saunder_n note_v first_o that_o he_o call_v they_o priest_n whereby_o he_o will_v prove_v they_o have_v power_n to_o offer_v external_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v a_o simple_a reason_n for_o then_o all_o christian_a man_n &_o woman_n within_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v priest_n have_v the_o same_o power_n second_o he_o confess_v they_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v the_o emperor_n for_o none_o can_v be_v great_a than_o a_o priest_n in_o their_o challenge_n and_o spiritual_a government_n the_o emperor_n mean_v and_o not_o as_o the_o popish_a church_n practise_v to_o dispose_v the_o emperor_n three_o that_o priest_n can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o man_n if_o this_o be_v so_o one_o priest_n can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o a_o other_o and_o where_o be_v then_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o he_o answer_v if_o one_o priest_n judge_v a_o other_o it_o be_v god_n judgement_n and_o not_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n because_o god_n have_v set_v one_o priest_n above_o another_o o_o blockish_a answer_n as_o though_o god_n have_v not_o set_v one_o prince_n above_o all_o his_o subject_n you_o see_v how_o popish_a priest_n advance_v themselves_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o withdraw_v their_o obedience_n from_o god_n lieutenaunt_n on_o earth_n a_o undoubted_a note_n of_o antichristian_o you_o will_v ask_v i_o then_o what_o sense_n these_o word_n have_v you_o can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o man_n i_o answer_v either_o they_o be_v mean_v as_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o conscience_n in_o do_v of_o his_o office_n which_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n or_o else_o ruffinus_n as_o he_o be_v a_o bold_a reporter_n frame_v the_o emperor_n word_n accord_v to_o that_o estimation_n which_o he_o will_v have_v man_n to_o have_v of_o the_o clergy_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a by_o record_n of_o constantinus_n time_n that_o he_o do_v judge_v bishop_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o as_o supreme_a governor_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n master_n saunder_n confess_v he_o judge_v certain_a priest_n or_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n but_o he_o do_v it_o as_o augustine_n say_v epist._n 162._o as_o one_o that_o will_v afterward_o ask_v pardon_n of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n at_o the_o importunity_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o as_o optatus_n record_v he_o say_v deschis_n lib._n 1._o petitis_fw-la à_fw-la i_o &c._n &c._n you_o ask_v of_o i_o judgement_n in_o the_o world_n whereas_o i_o myself_o look_v for_o christ_n judgement_n and_o augustine_n reprove_v the_o donatist_n that_o they_o will_v have_v a_o earthly_a king_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o their_o cause_n in_o deed_n the_o importunity_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v wicked_a who_o will_v so_o refer_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o emperor_n y_z t_z without_o knowledge_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n who_o be_v only_o meet_a judge_n in_o respect_n of_o knowledge_n in_o that_o case_n they_o will_v have_v y_z e_o cause_n decide_v but_o the_o emperor_n acknowledge_v his_o auctoririe_a appoint_a judge_n ecclesiastical_a person_n first_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n melchiade_n who_o he_o command_v with_o other_o bishop_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o caecilianus_n as_o eusebius_n who_o ●ued_v in_o his_o time_n write_v li._n 10._o ca._n 5._o and_o when_o the_o donatist_n appeal_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o his_o companion_n judgement_n he_o appoint_v other_o delegate_n as_o augustine_n also_o witness_v ep._n 162._o but_o to_o leave_v this_o cause_n of_o the_o donatist_n eusebius_n in_o his_o life_n libr._n 1._o say_v of_o he_o quoniam_fw-la nonnulli_fw-la variis_fw-la locis_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la discrepabant_fw-la quasi_fw-la communis_fw-la quidem_fw-la episcopus_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la constitutus_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la dei_fw-la synodos_fw-la convocavit_fw-la ne●_n dedignatus_fw-la est_fw-la adesse_fw-la &_o considere_fw-la in_o illorum_fw-la medio_fw-la because_o some_o of_o they_o in_o diverse_a place_n be_v at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o he_o as_o a_o certain_a general_a bishop_n appoint_v of_o god_n call_v together_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o disdain_v not_o to_o be_v present_a and_o to_o sit_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o in_o lib._n 3._o he_o show_v how_o he_o gather_v the_o universal_a synod_n of_o nice_a as_o it_o be_v lead_v forth_o the_o army_n of_o god_n to_o battle_n to_o this_o emperor_n do_v athanasius_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n appeal_v from_o the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n where_o he_o be_v injurious_o handle_v as_o both_o socrates_n testify_v lib._n 1_o and_o the_o very_a epistle_n of_o constantine_n himself_o unto_o that_o synod_n command_v all_o the_o bishop_n to_o come_v unto_o his_o presence_n and_o there_o to_o show_v before_o he_o quem_fw-la syncerum_fw-la esse_fw-la dei_fw-la ministrum_fw-la neque_fw-la vos_fw-la sanè_fw-la negabitis_fw-la who_o you_o can_v not_o deny_v to_o be_v a_o sincere_a minister_n of_o god_n how_o sincere_o they_o have_v judge_v in_o that_o council_n final_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o epistle_n he_o protest_v that_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a omni_fw-la virtute_fw-la conabor_fw-la ag●re_fw-la quaten●s_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la dei_fw-la sunt_fw-la ea_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la sine_fw-la aliqu●_n titubatione_fw-la seruentur_fw-la quibus_fw-la utique_fw-la neque_fw-la vituperatio_fw-la neque_fw-la mal●_n superstitio_fw-la poteris_fw-la implicari_fw-la dispersis_fw-la utique_fw-la ac_fw-la palam_fw-la contritis_fw-la &_o penitus_fw-la exterminatis_fw-la sacratissimae_fw-la legis_fw-la inimicis_fw-la qui_fw-la sub_fw-la schemate_fw-la sancti_fw-la nominis_fw-la blasphemas_fw-la varias_fw-la ad_fw-la diversos_fw-la inijciant_fw-la i_o will_v endeavour_n with_o all_o my_o might_n to_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n those_o chief_o without_o any_o stagger_v may_v be_v observe_v which_o by_o no_o reproof_n or_o evil_a superstition_n can_v be_v entangle_v when_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a law●_n which_o under_o a_o shape_n of_o a_o holy_a name_n do_v cast_v out_o diverse_a blasphemy_n unto_o sundry_a person_n be_v disperse_v &_o open_o tread_v down_o and_o utter_o root_v out_o let_v this_o suffice_v to_o show_v what_o supremacy_n constantinus_n do_v exercise_v in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a now_o master_n saunder_n draw_v we_o to_o see_v what_o honour_n he_o give_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n first_o he_o take_v it_o for_o most_o certain_a that_o constantine_n be_v baptize_v by_o sylvester_n which_o be_v a_o impudent_a lie_n and_o forge_a fable_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o eusebius_n who_o live_v in_o his_o time_n and_o after_o he_o who_o know_v he_o familiar_o and_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v baptize_v in_o his_o journey_n towards_o jordane_n where_o he_o have_v purpose_v to_o have_v be_v baptize_v if_o god_n have_v spare_v he_o life_n but_o this_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o eusebius_n master_n saunder_n refuse_v because_o he_o be_v suspect_v for_o affection_n to_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n beside_o that_o he_o be_v unjust_o suspect_v what_o reason_n be_v it_o to_o discredit_v his_o story_n who_o write_v at_o such_o
all_o church_n when_o the_o history_n be_v plain_a he_o do_v m._n saunder_n bring_v in_o these_o and_o such_o like_v alledg_v before_o which_o acknowledge_v a_o certain_a primacy_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o phocas_n time_n affect_v a_o great_a primacy_n which_o of_o many_o be_v acknowledge_v but_o yet_o never_o absolute_o never_o without_o controversy_n until_o phocas_n for_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n receyve_v of_o boniface_n the_o third_o strike_v the_o stroke_n and_o make_v the_o decree_n for_o which_o in_o all_o popish_a writer_n he_o be_v high_o praise_v although_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n his_o decree_n be_v not_o long_o observe_v touch_v the_o example_n of_o emperor_n and_o prince_n of_o late_a time_n although_o i_o can_v show_v they_o have_v often_o resist_v the_o pope_n yet_o i_o know_v many_o may_v be_v allege_v that_o have_v submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o antichristian_a tyranny_n which_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o examine_v because_o they_o can_v be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o truth_n approve_v by_o example_n of_o the_o elder_a age_n as_o for_o the_o history_n of_o lucius_n king_n of_o britain_n that_o send_v to_o eleutherius_fw-la for_o preacher_n if_o it_o be_v true_a it_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o romish_a bishop_n i_o will_v therefore_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o a_o say_n of_o socrates_n in_o proe_n lib._n 5._o to_o show_v what_o authority_n he_o judge_v they_o perour_n to_o have_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n etipsos_fw-la quidem_fw-la imperatores_fw-la hac_fw-la historia_fw-la continua_fw-la complectimur_fw-la pr●pterea_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la postquam_fw-la christiani_n esse_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la res_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la pendent_fw-la &_o maximae_fw-la synodi_fw-la ex_fw-la illorum_fw-la sententia_fw-la &_o congregatae_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o congregantur_fw-la and_o in_o this_o continual_a history_n we_o comprehend_v the_o emperor_n themselves_o because_o that_o upon_o they_o since_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v christian_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v and_o the_o great_a synod_n have_v be_v gather_v &_o be_v gather_v by_o their_o authority_n the_o punishment_n he_o threaten_v to_o they_o that_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v one_o day_n fall_v upon_o they_o that_o take_v part_n with_o ●_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o in_o part_n it_o do_v already_o the_o 17._o chapter_n their_o doctrine_n who_o teach_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a●●ichrist_n saunder_n himself_o be_v confute_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n and_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o ancient_a father_n why_o antichrist_n be_v permit_v to_o come_v after_o he_o have_v show_v his_o opinion_n what_o manner_n a_o one_o fulke_n antechrist_n be_v &_o allege_v ●●●●_o cause_n of_o his_o come_n out_o of_o s._n paul_n 2._o thes._n 2._o because_o man_n have_v not_o receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o the_o work_n of_o error_n y_z t_z they_o may_v believe_v lie_v etc._n etc._n he_o storm_v out_o of_o measure_n against_o the_o protestant_n for_o that_o they_o can_v find_v no_o place_n to_o settle_v antichrist_n in_o but_o in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o beautify_v &_o dignify_v by_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o see_v antichrist_n be_v appoint_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o high_a place_n then_o s._n peter_n chayer_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o satan_n have_v thrust_v he_o into_o that_o see_v which_o of_o old_a time_n be_v account_v the_o top_n and_o castle_n of_o all_o religion_n but_o let_v we_o see_v his_o reason_n take_v out_o of_o god_n word_n by_o which_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o the_o first_o be_v because_o in_o s._n paul_n he_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n the_o man_n of_o sin_n which_o signify_v one_o singular_a man_n and_o not_o a_o number_n of_o man_n in_o succession_n and_o this_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v the_o greek_a article_n in_o this_o word_n man_n by_o cyrillus_n in_o joan._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o but_o how_o friendly_a cyrillus_n be_v deceive_v you_o shall_v see_v by_o some_o example_n even_o out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o s._n matthew_n cap._n 12._o 35._o you_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o good_a man_n out_o of_o the_o good_a treasure_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o a_o evil_a man_n out_o of_o the_o evil_a treasure_n of_o his_o heart_n bring_v &c._n &c._n where_o no_o one_o singular_a man_n be_v mean_v in_o s._n mark_n cap._n 2._o verse_n 27._o the_o sabbath_n be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o man_n &_o not_o man_n for_o the_o sabbath_n in_o s._n luke_n cap._n 4._o verse_n 4._o not_o with_o bread_n only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o man_n shall_v live_v but_o by_o every_o word_n of_o god_n s._n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3._o ver_fw-la 17._o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v perfect_a and_o prepare_v to_o every_o good_a work_n these_o place_n and_o a_o hundred_o more_o which_o may_v be_v bring_v do_v prove_v how_o vain_a the_o argument_n be_v thatis_o take_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o greek_a article_n nether_a be_v hierom_n or_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n to_o be_v hear_v without_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o suppose_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v one_o man_n although_o none_o of_o they_o direct_o affirm_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v one_o man_n as_o christ_n be_v hierom_n in_o dani._n cap._n 7._o say_v we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v a_o devil_n but_o one_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o man_n in_o who_o satan_n shall_v dwell_v this_o prove_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o singular_a man_n no_o more_o than_o the_o four_o beast_n which_o signify_v the_o roman_a empire_n out_o of_o which_o he_o shall_v rise_v shall_v be_v one_o singular_a emperor_n no_o more_o do_v it_o prove_v that_o because_o antiochus_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o he_o he_o must_v be_v but_o one_o man_n and_o as_o little_a that_o ambrose_n in_o 2._o the._n 2_o say_v satan_n shall_v appear_v in_o homine_fw-la in_o a_o man_n which_o may_v signify_v the_o kind_n of_o man_n and_o not_o one_o singular_a person_n likewise_o augustine_n call_v antichrist_n the_o prince_n and_o last_o antichrist_n mean_v no_o one_o person_n for_o the_o word_n prince_n and_o last_o may_v agree_v to_o a_o whole_a succession_n of_o man_n in_o one_o state_n as_o well_o as_o the_o word_n king_n and_o beast_n to_o a_o whole_a succession_n of_o emperor_n in_o daniel_n to_o conclude_v there_o be_v not_o one_o who_o he_o name_v that_o deny_v antichrist_n to_o be_v a_o whole_a succession_n of_o man_n in_o one_o state_n of_o devilish_a government_n and_o irenaeus_n think_v it_o probable_a of_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n lib._n 5._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v that_o antichrist_n be_v call_v the_o adversary_n &_o therefore_o be_v the_o great_a enemy_n of_o christ_n deny_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o man_n or_o to_o be_v our_o mediator_n i_o answer_v the_o pope_n do_v so_o deny_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n although_o with_o the_o devil_n he_o confess_v in_o word_n jesus_n to_o be_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n mark_v 1._o 24._o luke_n 4._o 41._o his_o divinity_n the_o pope_n deni_v by_o deny_v his_o only_a power_n in_o save_v his_o wisdom_n in_o his_o word_n to_o be_v only_o sufficient_a his_o goodness_n in_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n to_o take_v away_o both_o pain_n and_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o he_o arrogate_v to_o himself_o by_o his_o blasphemous_a pardon_n christ_n humanity_n he_o deny_v by_o his_o transubstantiation_n his_o mediation_n in_o which_o he_o be_v principal_o christ_n he_o deny_v by_o so_o many_o mean_n of_o salvation_n as_o he_o make_v beside_o christ_n videlicet_fw-la man_n merit_n ceremony_n invent_v by_o man_n pardon_n a_o new_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n the_o three_o argument_n be_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o come_v before_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v clean_o take_v away_o for_o that_o which_o saint_n paul_n say_v you_o know_v what_o withhold_v etc._n etc._n although_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o expound_v this_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n yet_o follow_v the_o old_a writer_n that_o so_o understand_v it_o i_o say_v the_o roman_a empire_n be_v remove_v before_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n be_v thorough_o install_v for_o beside_o that_o the_o see_v of_o the_o empire_n be_v remove_v from_o rome_n the_o government_n itself_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n clean_o remove_v the_o title_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n only_o remain_v at_o last_o a_o
cap._n 16._o but_o whereas_o rome_n be_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o seven_o hill_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n cap_n 17._o m._n saunder_n count_v it_o a_o childish_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o see_v of_o antichrist_n to_o be_v there_o for_o that_o the_o city_n be_v now_o go_v from_o the_o hill_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o plain_n of_o campus_n martius_n and_o the_o pope_n sit_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o river_n upon_o the_o hill_n vatican_n hard_a by_o saint_n peter_n church_n by_o who_o he_o hold_v his_o chair_n not_o at_o all_o derive_v his_o power_n from_o the_o seven_o hill_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o the_o pope_n sit_v now_o in_o a_o other_o rome_n than_o peter_n the_o apostle_n sit_v how_o will_v master_n saunder_n persuade_v we_o that_o he_o fit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n for_o that_o rome_n where_o peter_n sit_v be_v build_v upon_o seven_o hill_n and_o not_o go_v down_o into_o the_o plain_a of_o campus_n martin_n nor_o over_o the_o river_n beside_o this_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o although_o the_o people_n have_v remove_v their_o habitation_n from_o the_o hill_n yet_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o for_o on_o they_o be_v still_o to_o this_o day_n his_o church_n monasterye_n &_o court_n for_o on_o the_o mount_n caelius_n be_v the_o monastery_n of_o sainte_n gregory_n the_o church_n of_o john_n and_o paul_n the_o hospital_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o round_a church_n the_o great_a minster_n of_o laterane_n in_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o aposiles_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o the_o goodly_a building_n in_o the_o world_n where_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n dwell_v until_o the_o time_n of_o nicolas_n the_o second_o which_o be_v almost_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n the_o mount_n auentinus_n have_v three_o monastetye_n of_o sabina_n bonifacius_n and_o alexius_n the_o mount_n exquilinus_n have_v the_o church_n of_o saint_n peter_n himself_o surname_v ad_fw-la vincula_fw-la the_o mount_n viminalis_fw-la have_v the_o church_n of_o s._n laurence_n in_o palisperna_n and_o s._n potentiana_n the_o mount_n tarpeius_n or_o capitoline_n have_v a_o house_n of_o friar_n minor_n call_v ara_n coeli_fw-la and_o there_o do_v boniface_n the_o nine_o build_v a_o fair_a house_n of_o brick_n for_o keep_v of_o court_n the_o mount_n palatinus_n be_v a_o place_n call_v the_o great_a palace_n and_o have_v a_o old_a church_n of_o s._n nicolas_n and_o of_o s._n andrew_n the_o mount_n quirinalis_n be_v not_o altogether_o void_a of_o habitation_n to_o which_o appertain_v the_o church_n of_o s._n maria_n de_fw-fr populo_fw-la the_o city_n with_o 7._o hill_n be_v still_o the_o see_v of_o antichrist_n describe_v by_o s._n john_n at_o such_o time_n as_o those_o 7_o hill_n be_v most_o of_o alinhabited_a &_o garnish_v with_o sumptuous_a building_n but_o m._n s._n to_o darken_v the_o pprophecy_n say_v those_o 7._o hill_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o pride_n in_o secular_a prince_n to_o who_o the_o protestant_n commit_v the_o supreme_a government_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o this_o contumely_n that_o he_o blow_v out_o against_o christian_n prince_n neither_o will_v i_o stand_v to_o prove_v that_o 7._o hill_n in_o that_o place_n be_v take_v literal_o which_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n because_o 7._o hill_n be_v the_o exposition_n of_o 7._o head_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o beast_n but_o how_o will_v m._n s_o or_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n deny_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v that_o babylon_n and_o see_v of_o antichrist_n when_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n say_v and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v that_o great_a city_n which_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o if_o any_o man_n say_v be_v any_o other_o city_n than_o rome_n all_o learning_n and_o learned_a man_n will_v cry_v out_o against_o he_o the_o see_v be_v find_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v the_o person_n by_o s._n paul_n description_n and_o this_o note_n especial_o that_o exclude_v the_o heathen_a tyrant_n he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n which_o when_o when_o we_o see_v to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o pope_n although_o none_o of_o the_o elder_a father_n can_v see_v it_o because_o it_o be_v perform_v after_o their_o death_n we_o nothing_o doubt_v to_o say_v &_o affirm_v still_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o man_n of_o sin_n &_o son_n of_o perdttion_n the_o adversary_n that_o lift_v up_o himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o be_v destroy_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n mouth_n &_o by_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o come_n the_o 18._o chapter_n not_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o be_v the_o member_n of_o antichriste_n by_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a saunder_n church_n by_o set_v uppe_o a_o new_a church_n and_o by_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n against_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n heretic_n depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n heretic_n be_v once_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n have_v new_a name_n why_o among_o the_o catholic_n some_o be_v call_v franciscanes_n dominicane_n etc._n etc._n heretic_n can_v never_o agree_v the_o short_a reign_n of_o heretic_n heretic_n preach_v without_o commission_n heretic_n do_v prefer_v the_o temporal_a reign_n or_o sword_n before_o the_o spiritual_a they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o antichrist_n who_o withstand_v the_o external_a and_o publke_v sacrifice_n of_o christ_n church_n heretic_n deprive_v christ_n of_o his_o glorious_a inheritance_n in_o many_o nation_n together_o the_o intolerable_a pride_n of_o heretic_n in_o make_v themselves_o only_a judge_n of_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n the_o protestant_n teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o old_a heretic_n do_v the_o protestant_n be_v the_o right_a member_n of_o antichriste_n in_o that_o they_o sporle_v god_n church_n of_o very_a many_o gift_n &_o grace_n &_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n he_o make_v 11._o mark_n of_o a_o antichristian_a the_o 1._o be_v fulke_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v i_o answer_v the_o protestant_n have_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v go_v out_o o●_n the_o church_n of_o antechrist_n according_a as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ●poc_fw-la 18._o 4._o &_o be_v return_v to_o th●●h●●ch_v of_o christ_n which_o by_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o d●uill_n be_v drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n apoc._n 22._o 6._o but_o m_n sand_n will_v have_v the_o place_n name_v where_o they_o dwell_v from_o who_o the_o pope_n depart_v as_o though_o the_o place_n be_v material_a when_o his_o depa●ture_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v manifest_a and_o saint_n paul_n prophesy_v of_o the_o great_a apostasy_n and_o depart_n from_o christ_n which_o antechrist_n shall_v make_v 2_o ●hess_n 2._o to_o himself_o &_o his_o own_o doctrine_n as_o irenaeus_n do_v expound_v it_o ●●b_fw-la 5._o &_o basi._n ep._n 71._o which_o all_o nation_n people_n &_o tongue_n shall_v embrace_v ap●●_n 18._o 3._o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o no_o place_n can_v be_v name_v altogether_o void_a of_o the_o insection_n of_o ant●christ_n especial_o see_v the_o church_n herself_o be_v drive_v into_o the_o desert_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o donbt_n but_o god_n preserve_v his_o church_n though_o in_o small_a number_n both_o in_o the_o east_n &_o in_o the_o west_n and_o namely_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o britain_n both_o in_o wales_n and_o scotland_n not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n nor_o acknowledge_v his_o authority_n at_o such_o time_n as_o augustine_n the_o monk_n come_v from_o pope_n gregory_n &_o so_o con●nued_v long_o after_o the_o revelation_n of_o antechrist_n bed_n hist._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o like_a be_v in_o many_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n the_o 2._o mark_n of_o a_o antichristian_a he_o make_v to_o have_v new_a name_n after_o they_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o lutheran_n zwinglian_o etc._n etc._n whereas_o they_o have_v none_o but_o catholic_n yes_o very_o the_o name_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n &_o papist_n be_v as_o ancient_a as_o the_o name_n of_o luther_n &_o lutherans_n &_o more_o ancient_a to_o m._n sand._n say_v we_o geve_v they_o these_o name_n of_o spite_n eight_o or_o nine_o hundred_o ye●res_n since_o the_o papacy_n begin_v the_o like_a i_o say_v of_o they_o who_o call_v we_o lutheran_n &c._n &c._n of_o mere_a malice_n when_o we_o be_v nothing_o but_o christian_n wherefore_o the_o trial_n must_v be_v in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o either_o sort_n profess_v and_o not_o in_o name_n the_o christian_n of_o the_o arian_n be_v call_v
propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n once_o offer_v by_o which_o one_o oblation_n he_o have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v heb._n 10._o the_o auctor_fw-la of_o this_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n he_o be_v in_o deed_n antichrist_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n but_o master_n saunder_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n allege_v the_o prophecy_n of_o malachi_n cap._n 1._o with_o 16._o fond_a comparison_n of_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o uniform_a interpretation_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o who_o no_o one_o deny_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v here_o mean_v albeit_o some_o of_o they_o expound_v this_o prophecy_n of_o prayer_n and_o inward_a righteousness_n which_o be_v always_o join_v with_o the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n i_o answer_v no_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v this_o prophecy_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n otherwise_o then_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanks_n give_v for_o proof_n whereof_o i_o must_v refer_v the_o reader_n to_o my_o answer_n to_o m._n heskin_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 33._o 34._o 35._o &_o 36._o where_o he_o shall_v find_v the_o place_n of_o the_o doctor_n set_v down_o which_o be_v by_o m._n saunder_n in_o place_n only_o quote_v but_o one_o other_o strange_a reason_n of_o m._n saunder_n to_o prove_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a i_o may_v not_o omit_v because_o i_o remember_v not_o that_o i_o have_v read_v it_o before_o every_o public_a and_o external_a fact_n which_o be_v make_v by_o god_n authority_n to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o grea●_n sacrifice_n once_o fulfil_v on_o the_o cross_n m●s●e_v also_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o remembrance_n as_o if_o the_o kill_n of_o a_o calf_n which_o signify_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o external_a sacrifice_n how_o infinite_o more_o shall_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o signify_v his_o own_o death_n be_v a_o public_a and_o external_a sacrifice_n this_o reason_n m._n saunder_n make_v no_o small_a account_n of_o but_o how_o beastly_a a_o absurdity_n his_o principle_n be_v you_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v if_o you_o consider_v that_o baptism_n be_v a_o public_a and_o external_a fact_n make_v by_o god_n authority_n to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o death_n and_o bloodshedding_n of_o christ_n yet_o no_o man_n be_v ever_o so_o mad_a to_o say_v baptism_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n again_o the_o calf_n that_o be_v kill_v be_v by_o god_n appointment_n a_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o only_a &_o singular_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n &_o not_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o signification_n for_o the_o jew_n have_v other_o ceremony_n than_o sacrifice_n which_o do_v signify_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v not_o by_o god_n appointment_n a_o sacrifice_n therefore_o the_o signification_n can_v make_v it_o so_o the_o 8._o mark_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o antichrist_n be_v to_o spoil_v christ_n of_o his_o inheritance_n which_o god_n give_v he_o in_o all_o nation_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v which_o for_o 8._o or_o 9_o hundred_o year_n can_v not_o show_v any_o nation_n town_n or_o village_n church_n or_o chapel_n in_o the_o wide_a world_n where_o they_o have_v public_a prayer_n i_o answer_v see_v the_o spirit_n speak_v express_o of_o a_o general_a apostasy_n and_o of_o the_o fly_n of_o the_o church_n into_o the_o desert_n it_o be_v no_o more_o derogation_n to_o the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n that_o his_o church_n among_o many_o nation_n be_v in_o persecution_n under_o antichrist_n for_o 7._o or_o 8._o hundred_o year_n then_o that_o the_o same_o be_v in_o persecution_n under_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n for_o 300._o year_n and_o more_o for_o the_o nation_n be_v then_o the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n in_o as_o glorious_a wise_n as_o when_o the_o church_n flourish_v in_o outward_a peace_n under_o the_o christian_a emperor_n yet_o be_v there_o town_n &_o country_n not_o only_o in_o france_n italy_n and_o germany_n but_o also_o in_o the_o east_n part_n of_o the_o world_n great_a nation_n among_o with_o c_o christ_n have_v a_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v never_o subject_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o m._n s._n reply_n that_o they_o hold_v some_o error_n which_o we_o deny_v as_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v hold_v the_o only_a foundation_n jesus_n christ_n they_o may_v be_v true_a christian_n although_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o some_o such_o error_n as_o these_o the_o 9_o mark_v of_o antichrist_n be_v intolerable_a pride_n to_o make_v himself_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n and_o of_o the_o text_n also_o i_o allow_v this_o mark_n &_o it_o agree_v to_o none_o that_o ever_o be_v so_o apt_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o the_o papist_n affirm_v that_o he_o can_v not_o err_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n who_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o receive_v &_o reject_v what_o book_n of_o scripture_n he_o wil._n but_o m._n saunder_n say_v this_o note_n agree_v to_o we_o and_o that_o we_o make_v ourselves_o judge_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n and_o of_o the_o text_n but_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o for_o we_o make_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o his_o word_n judge_v of_o the_o interpretation_n no_o say_v m._n saunder_n &_o bring_v a_o example_n of_o these_o be_v of_o s._n paul_n he_o that_o join_v his_o virgin_n in_o marriage_n do_v well_o and_o he_o that_o join_v she_o not_o do_v better_a here_o upon_o say_v he_o we_o ground_n this_o doctrine_n virginity_n be_v a_o better_a state_n and_o more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n than_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n this_o we_o grant_v in_o some_o respect_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v but_o not_o simpyl_v the_o question_n be_v of_o these_o word_n he_o do_v better_a what_o be_v mean_v thereby_o m._n saunder_n charge_v we_o to_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n mean_v he_o do_v better_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v a_o impudentlye_o and_o therefore_o all_o his_o foolish_a dialogism_n be_v a_o fight_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n beza_n expound_v he_o do_v better_a that_o be_v more_o commodious_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o world_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o godliness_n for_o the_o reason_n before_o allege_v by_o s._n paul_n &_o s._n paul_n himself_o be_v auctor_fw-la of_o this_o interpretation_n verse_n 35._o of_o that_o 7._o chap._n 1._o cor._n this_o i_o say_v for_o your_o commodity_n when_o he_o exhort_v to_o virginity_n and_o that_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o absolute_o and_o simple_o to_o prefer_v virginity_n above_o marriage_n as_o a_o thing_n of_o itself_o more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o these_o word_n first_o he_o say_v of_o virgin_n i_o have_v no_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o he_o have_v a_o commandment_n to_o prefer_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o the_o lord_n second_o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v good_a for_o the_o present_a necessity_n by_o which_o word_n he_o do_v imply_z that_o it_o be_v not_o always_o &_o absolute_o better_a but_o at_o sometime_o &_o in_o some_o respect_n for_o they_o that_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o continence_n and_o for_o none_o other_o so_o we_o hold_v virginity_n to_o be_v better_a than_o marriage_n according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o best_a ancient_a writer_n whereof_o some_o be_v too_o great_a extoller_n of_o virginity_n yet_o not_o like_o the_o papist_n but_o m._n saunder_n say_v the_o protestant_n make_v they_o self_n judge_n not_o only_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o god_n word_n but_o also_o of_o the_o book_n themselves_o for_o they_o reject_v not_o only_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n toby_n &_o the_o maccabee_n with_o other_o such_o book_n but_o also_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james._n nay_o rather_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n for_o receive_v these_o book_n of_o wisdom_n toby_n maccabee_n w_z c_o be_v never_o receive_v of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o israelit_n nor_o of_o the_o universalchurch_n of_o christ_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o i_o have_v often_o show_v and_o as_o touch_v y_z e_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n it_o be_v a_o shameless_a slander_n of_o he_o to_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n reject_v it_o but_o we_o must_v hear_v his_o reason_n first_o luther_n call_v it_o a_o strawen_v epistle_n so_o luther_n call_v the_o pope_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mass_n a_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a if_o protestant_n be_v charge_v to_o hold_v